Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n christian_a holy_a true_a 2,766 4 3.9231 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30895 An apology for the true Christian divinity, as the same is held forth, and preached by the people, called, in scorn, Quakers being a full explanation and vindication of their principles and doctrines, by many arguments, deduced from Scripture and right reason, and the testimony of famous authors, both ancient and modern, with a full answer to the strongest objections usually made against them, presented to the King / written and published in Latine, for the information of strangers, by Robert Barclay ; and now put into our own language, for the benefit of his country-men.; Theologiae verè Christianae apologia. English Barclay, Robert, 1648-1690. 1678 (1678) Wing B721; ESTC R1740 415,337 436

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

but_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n as_o we_o have_v before_o prove_v their_o example_n can_v be_v no_o way_n applicable_a to_o we_o except_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n as_o they_o do_v that_o be_v by_o the_o same_o object_n the_o apostle_n clear_v this_o yet_o further_o by_o his_o own_o example_n gal._n 1.16_o where_o he_o say_v so_o soon_o as_o christ_n be_v reveal_v in_o he_o he_o consult_v not_o with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o forthwith_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o same_o apostle_n heb._n 13.7_o 8._o where_o he_o exhort_v the_o hebrew_n to_o follow_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o elder_n add_v this_o reason_n consider_v the_o end_n of_o their_o conversation_n jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o to_o day_n yesterday_o and_o for_o ever_o hereby_o notable_o insinuate_v that_o in_o the_o object_n there_o be_v no_o alteration_n if_o any_o now_o object_v the_o diversity_n of_o administration_n i_o answer_v that_o alter_v not_o at_o all_o the_o object_n for_o the_o same_o apostle_n mention_v this_o diversity_n three_o time_n 1_o cor._n 12.4_o 5_o 6._o center_v always_o in_o the_o same_o object_n the_o same_o spirit_n the_o same_o lord_n the_o same_z god_n but_o further_a if_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o both_o to_o we_o and_o to_o they_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o we_o be_v to_o know_v god_n some_o other_o way_n than_o by_o the_o spirit_n but_o this_o be_v absurd_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n last_o this_o be_v most_o firm_o prove_v from_o a_o common_a and_o receive_a maxim_n of_o the_o schoolman_n to_o wit_n omnis_fw-la actus_fw-la specificatur_fw-la ab_fw-la objecto_fw-la every_o act_n be_v specify_v from_o its_o object_n from_o which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o they_o acknowledge_v though_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o many_o i_o shall_v not_o recur_v to_o this_o argument_n as_o be_v too_o nice_a and_o scholastic_a neither_o lay_v i_o much_o stress_n upon_o those_o kind_n of_o thing_n as_o be_v that_o which_o commend_v not_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o object_n be_v different_a than_o the_o faith_n will_v be_v different_a also_o such_o as_o deny_v this_o proposition_n now_o adays_o use_v here_o a_o distinction_n grant_v that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o his_o spirit_n but_o again_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v immediate_a or_o inward_a but_o in_o and_o by_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o say_v be_v full_o and_o ample_o express_v we_o be_v thereby_o to_o know_v god_n and_o be_v lead_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o to_o the_o negative_a of_o this_o assertion_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a neither_o be_v ever_o appoint_v to_o be_v the_o adequate_a and_o only_a rule_n nor_o yet_o can_v guide_v or_o direct_v a_o christian_a in_o all_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v needful_a for_o he_o to_o know_v we_o shall_v leave_v that_o to_o the_o next_o proposition_n to_o be_v examine_v what_o be_v proper_a in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v prove_v be_v that_o christian_n now_o be_v to_o be_v lead_v inward_o and_o immediate_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n even_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n though_o it_o befall_v not_o to_o many_o to_o be_v lead_v in_o the_o same_o measure_n as_o the_o saint_n be_v of_o old_a §_o x._o i_o shall_v prove_v this_o by_o divers_a argument_n and_o first_o from_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n joh._n 14.16_o and_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o 17._o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v because_o it_o see_v he_o not_o neither_o know_v he_o but_o you_o know_v he_o for_o he_o dwell_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o again_o ver_fw-la 26._o but_o the_o comforter_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o your_o remembrance_n and_o 16.13_o but_o when_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n for_o he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v hear_v he_o shall_v speak_v and_o shall_v declare_v unto_o you_o thing_n to_o come_v we_o have_v here_o first_o who_o this_o be_v and_o that_o be_v divers_a way_n express_v to_o wit_n the_o comforter_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o send_v of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ._n and_o hereby_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v the_o fottishness_n of_o those_o socinian_o and_o other_o carnal_a christian_n who_o neither_o know_v nor_o acknowledge_v any_o internal_a spirit_n or_o power_n but_o that_o which_o be_v mere_o natural_a by_o which_o they_o sufficient_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o the_o world_n who_o can_v receive_v the_o spirit_n because_o they_o neither_o see_v he_o nor_o know_v he_o second_o where_o this_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v he_o dwell_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o and_o three_o what_o his_o work_n be_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o your_o remembrance_n and_o guide_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o to_o the_o first_o most_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o understand_v than_o what_o the_o plain_a word_n signify_v which_o be_v also_o evident_a by_o many_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o will_v hereafter_o occur_v neither_o do_v i_o see_v how_o such_o as_o affirm_v otherways_o can_v avoid_v blasphemy_n for_o if_o the_o comforter_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o scripture_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n see_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n if_o these_o man_n reason_v may_v take_v place_n where_o ever_o the_o spirit_n be_v mention_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o saint_n thereby_o may_v be_v true_o and_o proper_o understand_v the_o scripture_n which_o what_o a_o nonsensical_a monster_n it_o will_v make_v of_o the_o christian_a religion_n will_v easy_o appear_v to_o all_o men._n as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o it_o may_v be_v render_v thus_o a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o what_o notable_a sense_n this_o will_v make_v and_o what_o a_o curious_a interpretation_n let_v we_o consider_v by_o the_o sequel_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n 1_o cor._n 12.9_o 10_o 11._o to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o heal_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o another_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n etc._n etc._n but_o all_o these_o work_v that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n divide_v to_o every_o man_n several_o as_o he_o will_n what_o will_v now_o these_o great_a master_n of_o reason_n the_o socinian_o judge_n if_o we_o shall_v place_v the_o scripture_n here_o instead_o of_o the_o spirit_n will_v it_o answer_v their_o reason_n which_o be_v the_o great_a guide_n of_o their_o faith_n will_v it_o be_v good_a and_o sound_a reason_n in_o their_o logical_a school_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n divide_v several_o as_o it_o will_v and_o give_v to_o some_o the_o gift_n of_o healing_n to_o other_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n if_o then_o this_o spirit_n a_o manifestation_n whereof_o be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o be_v no_o other_o than_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n beforementioned_a which_o guide_v into_o all_o truth_n this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n can_v be_v the_o scripture_n i_o can_v infer_v a_o hundred_o more_o absurdity_n of_o this_o kind_n upon_o this_o sottish_a opinion_n but_o what_o be_v say_v may_v suffice_v for_o even_o some_o of_o themselves_o be_v at_o time_n forgetful_a or_o ashamed_a of_o their_o own_o doctrine_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v another_o thing_n and_o distinct_a from_o the_o scripture_n to_o guide_v and_o influence_n the_o saint_n second_o that_o this_o spirit_n be_v inward_a in_o my_o opinion_n need_v no_o interpretation_n nor_o commentary_n he_o dwell_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o this_o indwel_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o saint_n as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o needful_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v so_o be_v it_o as_o positive_o assert_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v be_v if_o so_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n to_o the_o roman_n 8.9_o and_o again_o know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o 1_o cor._n 6.19_o without_o this_o the_o
when_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o to_o know_v what_o the_o divine_a goodness_n be_v call_v not_o for_o speculation_n but_o sensation_n taste_v and_o see_v how_o good_a the_o lord_n be_v that_o be_v not_o the_o best_a and_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o be_v wrought_v out_o by_o the_o labour_n and_o sweat_v of_o the_o brain_n but_o that_o which_o be_v kindle_v within_o we_o by_o a_o heavenly_a warmth_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o again_o there_o be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o jesus_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o christ-like_a nature_n as_o it_o be_v in_o that_o sweet_a mild_a humble_a and_o love_a spirit_n of_o jesus_n which_o spread_v itself_o like_o a_o morningstar_n upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o good_a man_n full_a of_o light_n and_o life_n it_o profit_v little_a to_o know_v christ_n himself_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o he_o give_v his_o spirit_n to_o good_a man_n that_o search_v the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o again_o it_o be_v but_o thin_a airy_a knowledge_n that_o be_v get_v by_o mere_a speculation_n which_o be_v usher_v in_o by_o syllogism_n and_o demonstration_n but_o that_o which_o spring_v forth_o from_o true_a goodness_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o origen_n speak_v it_o bring_v such_o a_o divine_a light_n to_o the_o soul_n as_o be_v more_o clear_a and_o convince_a than_o any_o demonstration_n §_o iii_o that_o this_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a method_n of_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o use_n have_v be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o device_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o secure_a mankind_n to_o his_o kingdom_n for_o after_o the_o light_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v prevail_v over_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o dispel_v the_o thick_a mist_n of_o the_o heathenish_a doctrine_n of_o the_o plurality_n of_o god_n he_o that_o know_v there_o be_v no_o probability_n of_o delude_v the_o world_n any_o long_a that_o way_n do_v then_o puff_n man_n up_o with_o a_o false_a knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n set_v he_o on_o work_n to_o seek_v god_n the_o wrong_a way_n and_o persuade_v he_o to_o be_v content_a with_o such_o a_o knowledge_n as_o be_v of_o his_o own_o acquire_v and_o not_o of_o god_n teach_v and_o this_o device_n have_v prove_v the_o more_o successful_a because_o accommodate_v to_o the_o natural_a and_o corrupt_a spirit_n and_o temper_n of_o man_n who_o above_o all_o thing_n affect_v to_o exalt_v himself_o in_o which_o exaltation_n as_o god_n be_v most_o great_o dishonour_v so_o therein_o the_o devil_n have_v his_o end_n who_o be_v not_o anxious_a how_o much_o god_n be_v acknowledge_v in_o word_n provide_v himself_o be_v but_o always_o serve_v he_o matter_n not_o how_o great_a and_o high_a speculation_n the_o natural_a man_n entertain_v of_o god_n so_o long_o as_o he_o serve_v his_o lust_n and_o passion_n and_o be_v obedient_a to_o his_o evil_a suggestion_n and_o temptation_n thus_o christianity_n be_v become_v a_o art_n acquire_v by_o humane_a science_n and_o industry_n as_o any_o other_o art_n and_o science_n be_v and_o man_n have_v not_o only_o assume_v unto_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n but_o even_o have_v procure_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o master_n of_o christianity_n by_o certain_a artificial_a trick_n though_o altogether_o stranger_n to_o the_o spirit_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v make_v a_o right_a definition_n of_o a_o christian_a according_a to_o the_o scripture_n videlicer_n that_o he_o be_v one_o that_o have_v the_o spirit_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o how_o many_o christian_n yea_o and_o of_o these_o great_a master_n and_o doctor_n of_o christianity_n so_o account_v shall_v we_o just_o divest_v of_o that_o noble_a title_n if_o then_o such_o as_o have_v all_o the_o other_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n and_o be_v sufficient_o learn_v therein_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o tradition_n of_o church_n the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o providence_n whence_o they_o be_v able_a to_o deduce_v strong_a and_o undeniable_a argument_n which_o may_v be_v true_a in_o themselves_o be_v not_o yet_o to_o be_v esteem_v christian_n according_a to_o the_o certain_a and_o infallible_a definition_n abovementioned_a and_o if_o the_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n in_o such_o as_o have_v be_v altogether_o ignorant_a of_o some_o and_o but_o very_o little_o skill_v in_o other_o of_o these_o mean_n of_o attain_v knowledge_n have_v bring_v they_o to_o salvation_n then_o it_o will_v necessary_o and_o evident_o follow_v that_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a and_o certain_a way_n to_o attain_v the_o true_a and_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a therefore_o the_o last_o now_o as_o this_o argument_n do_v very_o strong_o conclude_v for_o this_o way_n of_o knowledge_n and_o against_o such_o as_o deny_v it_o so_o herein_o it_o be_v the_o more_o considerable_a because_o the_o proposition_n from_o which_o it_o be_v deduce_v be_v so_o clear_a that_o our_o very_a adversary_n can_v deny_v they_o for_o as_o to_o the_o first_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o many_o learned_a man_n may_v be_v and_o have_v be_v damn_v and_o as_o to_o the_o second_o who_o will_v deny_v but_o many_o illiterate_a man_n may_v be_v and_o be_v save_v nor_o dare_v any_o affirm_v that_o none_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n by_o the_o inward_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o these_o outward_a mean_n unless_o they_o be_v also_o so_o bold_a as_o to_o exclude_v abel_n seth_n noah_n abraham_n job_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n from_o true_a knowledge_n and_o salvation_n §_o iv._o i_o will_v however_o not_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o hereby_o i_o exclude_v those_o other_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n from_o any_o use_n or_o service_n to_o man_n it_o be_v far_o from_o i_o to_o judge_v as_o in_o the_o next_o proposition_n concern_v the_o scripture_n shall_v more_o plain_o appear_v the_o question_n be_v not_o what_o may_v be_v profitable_a or_o helpful_a but_o what_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a many_o thing_n may_v contribute_v to_o further_a a_o work_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o that_o main_a thing_n that_o make_v the_o work_n go_v on_o the_o sum_n then_o of_o what_o be_v say_v amount_v to_o this_o that_o where_o the_o true_a inward_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v through_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o spirit_n there_o be_v all_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o any_o other_o but_o where_o the_o best_a high_a and_o most_o profound_a knowledge_n be_v without_o this_o there_o be_v nothing_o as_o to_o the_o obtain_v the_o great_a end_n of_o salvation_n this_o truth_n be_v very_o effectual_o confirm_v by_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o proposition_n itself_o which_o in_o few_o word_n comprehend_v divers_a unquestionable_a argument_n which_o i_o shall_v in_o brief_a subsume_v first_o that_o there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n second_o that_o there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n three_o that_o by_o the_o spirit_n god_n have_v always_o reveal_v himself_o to_o his_o chilldren_n four_o that_o these_o revelation_n be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o the_o saint_n faith_n and_o last_o that_o the_o same_o continue_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o saint_n faith_n to_o this_o day_n of_o each_o of_o these_o i_o shall_v speak_v a_o little_a particular_o and_o then_o proceed_v to_o the_o latter_a part_n §_o v._o as_o to_o the_o first_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n it_o will_v not_o need_v much_o probation_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o be_v therefore_o a_o fit_a medium_n to_o draw_v the_o rest_n of_o our_o assertion_n from_o for_o the_o infinite_a and_o most_o wise_a god_n who_o be_v the_o foundation_n root_n and_o spring_n of_o all_o operation_n have_v wrought_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o eternal_a word_n and_o son_n this_o be_v that_o word_n that_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n 3._o and_o be_v god_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o without_o who_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v this_o be_v that_o jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o god_n create_v all_o thing_n 3.9_o by_o who_o and_o for_o who_o all_o be_v create_v that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v throne_n or_o dominion_n or_o principality_n or_o power_n col._n 1.16_o who_o therefore_o be_v call_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n col._n 1.15_o as_o then_o that_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a fountain_n of_o life_n and_o motion_n operate_v in_o the_o creature_n by_o his_o
apostle_n reckon_v no_o man_n a_o christian._n if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o these_o word_n immediate_o follow_v those_o abovementioned_a out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n if_o so_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o the_o context_n of_o which_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n reckon_v it_o the_o main_a token_n of_o a_o christian_a both_o positive_o and_o negative_o for_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n he_o show_v how_o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n and_o that_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v he_o where_o subsume_v he_o add_v concern_v the_o roman_n that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o they_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o affirm_v that_o they_o in_o who_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v be_v no_o long_o in_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o those_o who_o please_v not_o god_n but_o be_v become_v christian_n indeed_o again_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n he_o conclude_v negative_o that_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o that_o be_v he_o be_v no_o christian._n he_o than_o that_o acknowledge_v himself_o ignorant_a and_o a_o stranger_n to_o the_o inward_a in_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o heart_n do_v thereby_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o carnal_a mind_n which_o be_v enmity_n to_o god_n to_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o flesh_n where_o god_n can_v be_v please_v and_o in_o short_a whatever_o he_o may_v otherways_o know_v or_o believe_v of_o christ_n or_o however_o much_o skill_v or_o acquaint_v with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o yet_o to_o be_v notwithstanding_o all_o that_o attain_v to_o the_o least_o desire_n of_o a_o christian_a yea_o not_o once_o to_o have_v embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n for_o take_v but_o away_o the_o spirit_n and_o christianity_n remain_v no_o more_o christianity_n than_o the_o dead_a carcase_n of_o a_o man_n when_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n be_v depart_v remain_v a_o man_n which_o the_o live_a can_v no_o more_o abide_v but_o to_o bury_v out_o of_o their_o sight_n as_o a_o noisome_a and_o useless_a thing_n however_o acceptable_a it_o have_v be_v when_o actuate_v and_o move_v by_o the_o soul_n last_o whatsoever_o be_v excellent_a whatsoever_o be_v noble_a whatsoever_o be_v worthy_a whatsoever_o be_v desirable_a in_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v ascribe_v to_o this_o spirit_n without_o which_o it_o can_v no_o more_o subsist_v than_o the_o outward_a world_n without_o the_o sun_n hereunto_o have_v all_o true_a christian_n in_o all_o age_n attribute_v their_o strength_n and_o life_n it_o be_v by_o this_o spirit_n that_o they_o avouch_v themselves_o to_o have_v be_v convert_v to_o god_n to_o have_v be_v redeem_v from_o the_o world_n to_o have_v be_v strengthen_v in_o their_o weakness_n comfort_v in_o their_o affliction_n confirm_v in_o their_o temptation_n embolden_v in_o their_o suffer_v and_o triumph_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o their_o persecution_n yea_o the_o write_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v full_a of_o the_o great_a and_o notable_a thing_n which_o they_o all_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o have_v do_v by_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o they_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v joh._n 6.63_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o give_v they_o utterance_n act._n c._n 2.4_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n by_o which_o stephen_n speak_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v act_v 6.10_o it_o be_v such_o as_o walk_v after_o the_o spirit_n that_o receive_v no_o condemnation_n rom._n 8.1_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o make_v free_a ver_fw-la 2._o it_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o that_o we_o be_v redeem_v from_o the_o flesh_n and_o from_o the_o carnal_a mind_n v_o 9_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o that_o quicken_v our_o mortal_a body_n v_o 11._o it_o be_v through_o this_o spirit_n that_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n be_v mortify_v and_o life_n obtain_v ver_fw-la 13._o it_o be_v by_o this_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v adopt_v and_o cry_v abba_n father_n v_o 15._o it_o be_v this_o spirit_n that_o bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n v_o 16._o it_o be_v this_o spirit_n that_o help_v our_o infirmity_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o with_o groaning_n which_o can_v be_v utter_v 26._o it_o be_v by_o this_o spirit_n that_o the_o glorious_a thing_n which_o god_n have_v lay_v up_o for_o we_o which_o neither_o outward_a ear_n have_v hear_v nor_o outward_a eye_n have_v see_v nor_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n conceive_v by_o all_o his_o reason_n be_v reveal_v unto_o we_o 1_o cor._n 2.9_o 10._o it_o be_v by_o this_o spirit_n that_o both_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n and_o miracle_n and_o tongue_n and_o prophecy_n be_v obtain_v 1_o cor._n 12.8_o 9_o 10._o it_o be_v by_o this_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n v_o 13._o in_o short_a what_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o to_o the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v right_o perform_v or_o effectual_o obtain_v without_o it_o and_o what_o shall_v i_o more_o say_v for_o the_o time_n will_v fail_v i_o to_o tell_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o old_a have_v declare_v and_o the_o saint_n of_o this_o day_n do_v witness_n themselves_o to_o enjoy_v by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o this_o spiritual_a dwell_n in_o they_o true_o my_o paper_n can_v not_o contain_v those_o many_o testimony_n whereby_o this_o truth_n be_v confirm_v wherefore_o beside_o what_o be_v above_o mention_v out_o of_o the_o father_n who_o all_o pretend_v to_o reverence_n and_o these_o of_o luther_n and_o melancthon_n i_o shall_v deduce_v yet_o one_o observable_a testimony_n out_o of_o calvin_n because_o not_o a_o few_o of_o the_o follower_n of_o his_o doctrine_n do_v refuse_v and_o deride_v and_o that_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v because_o of_o their_o own_o non-experience_n thereof_o this_o way_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v indwelling_a as_o uncertain_a and_o dangerous_a that_o so_o if_o neither_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o say_n of_o other_o nor_o right_a reason_n can_v move_v they_o they_o may_v at_o least_o be_v reprove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o their_o own_o master_n who_o say_v in_o the_o three_o book_n of_o his_o institution_n cap._n 2._o on_o this_o wise_a but_o they_o allege_v it_o be_v a_o bold_a presumption_n for_o any_o one_o to_o pretend_v to_o a_o undoubted_a knowledge_n of_o god_n will_n which_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v grant_v unto_o they_o if_o we_o shall_v ascribe_v so_o much_o to_o ourselves_o as_o to_o subject_v the_o incomprehensible_a counsel_n of_o god_n to_o the_o rashness_n of_o our_o understanding_n but_o while_o we_o simple_o say_v with_o paul_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n but_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n by_o who_o teach_v we_o know_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v we_o of_o god_n what_o can_v they_o prate_v against_o it_o without_o reproach_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o horrible_a sacrilege_n to_o accuse_v any_o revelation_n come_v from_o he_o either_o of_o a_o lie_n of_o uncertainty_n or_o ambiguity_n in_o assert_v its_o certainty_n wherein_o we_o do_v offend_v but_o they_o cry_v out_o that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o great_a temerity_n that_o we_o dare_v so_o boast_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ._n who_o will_v believe_v that_o the_o sottishness_n of_o these_o man_n be_v so_o great_a who_o will_v be_v esteem_v the_o master_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v so_o fail_v in_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o religion_n very_o i_o can_v not_o believe_v it_o if_o their_o own_o write_n do_v not_o testify_v so_o much_o paul_n account_v those_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v act_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o these_o will_v have_v the_o child_n of_o god_n act_v by_o their_o own_o spirit_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o will_v have_v we_o call_v god_n father_n the_o spirit_n dictate_v that_o term_n unto_o we_o which_o only_o can_v witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n these_o though_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n do_v nevertheless_o demit_fw-la the_o spirit_n by_o who_o guide_n he_o be_v right_o to_o be_v call_v upon_o he_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v
preferment_n man_n become_v such_o by_o birth_n and_o education_n and_o not_o by_o conversion_n and_o renovation_n of_o spirit_n then_o there_o be_v none_o so_o vile_a none_o so_o wicked_a none_o so_o profane_a who_o become_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o teacher_n and_o pastor_n thereof_o become_v the_o companion_n of_o prince_n and_o so_o be_v enrich_v by_o their_o benevolence_n and_o get_v vast_a treasure_n and_o estate_n become_v puff_v up_o and_o as_o it_o be_v drunken_a with_o the_o vain_a pomp_n and_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n and_o so_o marshal_v themselves_o in_o manifold_a order_n and_o degree_n not_o without_o innumerable_a contest_v and_o alteration_n who_o shall_v have_v the_o constantinople_n precedency_n so_o the_o virtue_n life_n substance_n and_o kernel_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n come_v to_o be_v lose_v and_o nothing_o remain_v but_o a_o shadow_n and_o image_n which_o dead_a image_n or_o carcase_n of_o christianity_n to_o make_v it_o take_v the_o better_a with_o the_o superstitious_a multitude_n of_o heathen_n that_o become_v engross_v in_o it_o not_o by_o any_o inward_a conversion_n of_o their_o heart_n or_o by_o become_v less_o wicked_a or_o superstitious_a but_o by_o a_o little_a change_n in_o the_o object_n of_o their_o superstition_n not_o have_v the_o inward_a ornament_n and_o life_n of_o the_o spirit_n become_v deck_v with_o many_o outward_a and_o visible_a order_n and_o beautify_v with_o the_o gold_n silver_z precious_a stone_n and_o the_o other_o splendid_a ornament_n of_o this_o perish_a world_n so_o that_o this_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v account_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o christian_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o outward_a profession_n than_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o live_a man_n which_o however_o cunning_o embalm_v and_o adorn_v with_o ever_o so_o much_o gold_n or_o silver_n or_o most_o precious_a stone_n or_o sweet_a ointment_n be_v but_o a_o dead_a body_n still_o without_o sense_n life_n or_o motion_n for_o that_o apostate_n church_n of_o rome_n have_v introduce_v no_o less_o ceremony_n and_o superstition_n into_o the_o christian_a profession_n than_o be_v either_o among_o jew_n or_o heathen_n and_o that_o there_o be_v and_o have_v be_v as_o much_o yea_o and_o more_o pride_n covetousness_n unclean_a lust_n luxury_n fornication_n profanity_n and_o atheism_n among_o her_o teacher_n and_o chief_a bishop_n as_o ever_o be_v among_o any_o sort_n of_o people_n none_o need_v doubt_v that_o have_v read_v their_o own_o author_n to_o wit_n platina_n and_o other_o now_o though_o protestant_n have_v reform_v from_o she_o in_o some_o of_o the_o most_o gross_a point_n and_o absurd_a doctrine_n relate_v to_o the_o church_n and_o ministry_n yet_o which_o be_v to_o be_v regret_v they_o have_v but_o lop_v the_o branch_n but_o retain_v and_o plead_v earnest_o for_o the_o same_o root_n from_o which_o these_o abuse_n have_v spring_v so_o that_o even_o among_o they_o though_o all_o that_o mass_n of_o superstition_n ceremony_n and_o order_n be_v not_o again_o establish_v yet_o the_o same_o pride_n covetousness_n and_o sensuality_n be_v find_v to_o have_v overspread_v and_o leaven_v their_o church_n and_o ministry_n and_o the_o life_n power_n and_o virtue_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v lose_v among_o they_o and_o the_o very_a same_o death_n barrenness_n dryness_n and_o emptyness_n be_v find_v in_o their_o ministry_n so_o that_o in_o effect_n they_o differ_v from_o papist_n but_o in_o form_n and_o some_o ceremony_n be_v with_o they_o apostatise_v from_o the_o life_n and_o power_n the_o true_a primitive_a church_n and_o her_o pastor_n be_v in_o so_o that_o of_o both_o it_o may_v be_v say_v true_o without_o breach_n of_o charity_n that_o have_v only_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n and_o many_o of_o they_o not_o so_o much_o as_o that_o they_o be_v denier_n of_o yea_o enemy_n to_o the_o power_n of_o it_o and_o this_o proceed_v not_o simple_o from_o their_o not_o walk_v answerable_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n and_o so_o degenerate_v that_o way_n which_o also_o be_v true_a but_o which_o be_v worse_o their_o set_n down_o to_o themselves_o and_o adhere_v to_o certain_a principle_n which_o natural_o as_o a_o curse_a fruit_n bring_v forth_o these_o bitter_a fruit_n these_o therefore_o shall_v afterward_o be_v examine_v and_o refute_v as_o the_o contrary_a position_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o proposition_n be_v explain_v and_o prove_v for_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n and_o constitution_n of_o a_o church_n abstract_a from_o their_o dispute_n concern_v its_o constant_a visibility_n infallibility_n and_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o protestant_n as_o in_o practice_n so_o in_o principle_n differ_v not_o from_o papist_n for_o they_o engross_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o church_n whole_a nation_n make_v their_o infant_n member_n of_o it_o by_o sprinkle_v a_o little_a water_n upon_o they_o so_o that_o there_o be_v none_o so_o wicked_a or_o profane_a who_o be_v not_o a_o fellow-member_n no_o evidence_n of_o holiness_n be_v require_v to_o constitute_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o look_v through_o the_o protestant_a nation_n and_o there_o shall_v no_o difference_n appear_v in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o one_o more_o than_o of_o the_o other_o but_o he_o who_o rule_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n reign_v in_o both_o so_o that_o the_o reformation_n through_o this_o defect_n be_v but_o in_o hold_v some_o less_o gross_a error_n in_o the_o notion_n but_o not_o in_o have_v the_o heart_n reform_v and_o renew_v in_o which_o main_o the_o life_n of_o christianity_n consist_v §_o vi_o but_o the_o popish_a error_n concern_v the_o ministry_n which_o they_o have_v retain_v be_v most_o of_o all_o to_o be_v regret_v by_o which_o chief_o the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o christianity_n be_v bar_v out_o among_o they_o and_o they_o keep_v in_o death_n barrenness_n and_o dryness_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o hurtful_a than_o a_o error_n in_o this_o respect_n for_o where_o a_o false_a and_o corrupt_a ministry_n enter_v all_o other_o manner_n of_o evil_n follow_v upon_o it_o according_a to_o that_o scripture_n adage_n 4.9_o like_o people_n like_o priest_n for_o by_o their_o influence_n instead_o of_o minister_a life_n and_o righteousness_n they_o minister_v death_n and_o iniquity_n the_o whole_a backslide_n of_o the_o jewish_a congregation_n of_o old_a be_v hereto_o ascribe_v the_o leader_n of_o my_o people_n have_v cause_v they_o to_o err_v the_o whole_a write_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v full_a of_o such_o complaint_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o be_v so_o often_o warn_v and_o guard_v to_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o false_a teacher_n etc._n etc._n what_o may_v be_v think_v then_o where_o all_o as_o to_o this_o be_v out_o of_o order_n where_o both_o the_o foundation_n call_v qualification_n maintenance_n and_o whole_a discipline_n be_v different_a from_o and_o opposite_a to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o and_o necessary_o tend_v to_o the_o shut_v out_o a_o spiritual_a ministry_n and_o the_o inbringing_a and_o establish_v a_o carnal_a this_o shall_v appear_v by_o part_n §_o vii_o that_o then_o which_o come_v first_o to_o be_v question_v in_o this_o matter_n be_v concern_v the_o call_n of_o a_o minister_n to_o wit_n what_o make_v or_o how_o come_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o minister_n quest._n pastor_n or_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n we_o answer_v by_o the_o inward_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o as_o say_v our_o proposition_n answ._n have_v receive_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o thing_n spiritual_a by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n without_o which_o they_o can_v be_v know_v and_o be_v by_o the_o same_o in_o measure_n purify_v and_o sanctify_a he_o come_v thereby_o to_o be_v call_v and_o move_v to_o minister_v to_o other_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v from_o a_o live_a experience_n of_o what_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o witness_n and_o therefore_o know_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v fit_a to_o persuade_v man_n etc._n etc._n 2_o cor._n 5.11_o and_o his_o word_n and_o ministry_n proceed_v from_o the_o inward_a power_n and_o virtue_n reach_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o hearer_n and_o make_v they_o approve_v of_o he_o and_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o our_o adversary_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v indeed_o desirable_a and_o best_a but_o this_o they_o will_v not_o have_v to_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a i_o shall_v first_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o and_o then_o show_v how_o much_o they_o err_v in_o that_o which_o they_o make_v more_o necessary_a than_o this_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a call_n first_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o christian_n arg._n so_o as_o without_o it_o he_o can_v
the_o natural_a man_n from_o a_o mere_a conviction_n of_o his_o understanding_n do_v in_o the_o forwardness_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o by_o his_o own_o natural_a strength_n without_o the_o influence_n and_o lead_n of_o god_n spirit_n go_v about_o either_o in_o his_o understanding_n to_o imagine_v conceive_v or_o think_v of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n or_o actual_o to_o perform_v they_o by_o preach_v or_o pray_v the_o first_o be_v a_o miss_v both_o in_o matter_n and_o form_n the_o second_o be_v a_o retain_v of_o the_o form_n without_o the_o life_n and_o substance_n of_o christianity_n because_o christian_a religion_n consist_v not_o in_o a_o mere_a belief_n of_o true_a doctrine_n or_o a_o mere_a performance_n of_o act_n good_a in_o themselves_o or_o else_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n though_o speak_v by_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o devil_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n which_o i_o judge_v none_o will_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o affirm_v and_o also_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o where_o the_o form_n of_o godliness_n be_v there_o the_o power_n be_v also_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o form_n of_o godliness_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v where_o either_o the_o notion_n and_o opinion_n believe_v be_v erroneous_a and_o ungodly_a or_o the_o act_n perform_v evil_a and_o wicked_a for_o than_o it_o will_v be_v the_o form_n of_o ungodliness_n and_o not_o of_o godliness_n but_o of_o this_o further_a hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v speak_v particular_o of_o preach_v and_o pray_v now_o though_o this_o last_o be_v not_o so_o bad_a as_o the_o former_a yet_o it_o have_v make_v way_n for_o it_o for_o man_n have_v first_o depart_v from_o the_o life_n and_o substance_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o worship_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o inward_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o as_o therein_o to_o act_v and_o thereby_o to_o have_v all_o their_o action_n enliven_v have_v only_o retain_v the_o form_n and_o show_v to_o wit_n the_o true_a word_n and_o appearance_n and_o so_o act_v in_o their_o own_o natural_a and_o unrenewed_a will_n in_o this_o form_n the_o form_n can_v not_o but_o quick_o decay_v and_o be_v vitiate_a for_o the_o work_n and_o active_a spirit_n of_o man_n can_v not_o contain_v itself_o within_o the_o simplicity_n and_o plainness_n of_o truth_n but_o give_v way_n to_o his_o own_o numerous_a invention_n and_o imagination_n begin_v to_o vary_v in_o the_o form_n and_o adapt_v it_o to_o his_o own_o invention_n until_o by_o degree_n the_o form_n of_o godliness_n for_o the_o most_o part_n come_v to_o be_v lose_v as_o well_o as_o the_o power_n for_o this_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n whereby_o man_n love_v idolize_v and_o hug_v his_o own_o conception_n invention_n and_o product_v of_o his_o own_o brain_n be_v so_o incident_a unto_o he_o and_o seat_v in_o his_o fall_a nature_n that_o so_o long_o as_o his_o natural_a spirit_n be_v the_o first_o author_n and_o actor_n of_o he_o and_o be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o only_o be_v guide_v and_o move_v in_o his_o worship_n towards_o god_n so_o as_o not_o first_o to_o wait_v for_o another_o guide_n to_o direct_v he_o he_o can_v never_o perform_v the_o pure_a spiritual_a worship_n nor_o bring_v forth_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o first_o fall_v natural_a and_o corrupt_a root_n wherefore_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god_n be_v come_v wherein_o by_o jesus_n christ_n he_o have_v be_v please_v to_o restore_v the_o true_a spiritual_a worship_n and_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o whereof_o the_o manner_n and_o time_n of_o its_o performance_n be_v particular_o determine_v by_o god_n himself_o be_v come_v to_o a_o end_n we_o find_v that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n prescribe_v no_o set_a form_n of_o worship_n to_o his_o child_n under_o the_o more_o pure_a administration_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n save_v that_o he_o only_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o worship_n now_o to_o be_v perform_v be_v spiritual_a and_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v especial_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n there_o be_v no_o order_n nor_o command_v give_v in_o this_o thing_n but_o to_o follow_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n save_v only_o that_o general_n of_o meet_v together_o a_o thing_n dear_o own_v and_o diligent_o practise_v by_o we_o as_o shall_v hereafter_o more_o appear_v true_a it_o be_v mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o duty_n of_o pray_v preach_a and_o sing_v but_o what_o order_n or_o method_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o so_o do_v or_o that_o present_o they_o shall_v be_v set_v about_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o saint_n be_v gather_v there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n to_o be_v find_v yea_o these_o duty_n as_o shall_v afterward_o be_v make_v appear_v be_v always_o annex_v to_o the_o assistance_n leading_n and_o motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n since_o then_o man_n in_o his_o natural_a state_n be_v thus_o exclude_v from_o act_v or_o move_v in_o thing_n spiritual_a how_o or_o what_o way_n shall_v he_o exercise_v this_o first_o and_o previous_a duty_n of_o wait_v upon_o god_n but_o by_o silence_n and_o by_o bring_v that_o natural_a part_n to_o silence_n which_o be_v no_o otherways_o but_o by_o abstain_v from_o his_o own_o thought_n and_o imagination_n and_o from_o all_o the_o self-working_n and_o motion_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n as_o well_o in_o thing_n material_o good_a as_o evil_a that_o he_o be_v silent_a god_n may_v speak_v in_o he_o and_o the_o good_a seed_n may_v arise_v this_o though_o hard_o to_o the_o natural_a man_n be_v so_o answerable_a to_o reason_n and_o even_o natural_a experience_n in_o other_o thing_n that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v he_o that_o come_v to_o learn_v of_o a_o master_n if_o he_o expect_v to_o hear_v his_o master_n and_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o must_v not_o continual_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v teach_v and_o never_o be_v quiet_a otherwise_o how_o shall_v his_o master_n have_v time_n to_o instruct_v he_o yea_o though_o the_o scholar_n be_v never_o so_o earnest_a to_o learn_v the_o science_n yet_o will_v the_o master_n have_v reason_n to_o reprove_v he_o as_o untoward_a and_o indocile_a if_o he_o will_v always_o be_v meddle_v of_o himself_o and_o still_o speak_v and_o not_o wait_v in_o silence_n patient_o to_o hear_v his_o master_n instruct_v and_o teach_v he_o who_o ought_v not_o to_o open_v a_o mouth_n until_o by_o his_o master_n he_o be_v command_v and_o allow_v so_o to_o do_v so_o also_o if_o one_o be_v about_o to_o attend_v a_o great_a prince_n he_o will_v be_v think_v a_o impertinent_a and_o imprudent_a servant_n who_o while_o he_o ought_v patient_o and_o ready_o to_o wait_v that_o he_o may_v answer_v the_o king_n when_o he_o speak_v and_o have_v his_o eye_n upon_o he_o to_o observe_v the_o least_o motion_n and_o inclination_n of_o his_o will_n and_o to_o do_v according_o will_v be_v still_o deafen_a he_o with_o discourse_n though_o it_o be_v in_o praise_n of_o he_o and_o run_v to_o and_o fro_o without_o any_o particular_a and_o immediate_a order_n to_o do_v thing_n that_o perhaps_o may_v be_v good_a in_o themselves_o or_o may_v have_v be_v command_v at_o other_o time_n to_o other_o will_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n accept_v of_o such_o servant_n or_o service_n since_o then_o we_o be_v command_v to_o wait_v upon_o god_n diligent_o and_o in_o so_o do_v it_o be_v promise_v that_o our_o strength_n shall_v be_v renew_v this_o wait_a can_v be_v perform_v but_o by_o silence_n or_o cessation_n of_o the_o natural_a part_n on_o our_o side_n since_o god_n manifest_v himself_o not_o to_o the_o outward_a man_n or_o sense_n so_o much_o as_o to_o the_o inward_a to_o wit_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n if_o the_o soul_n be_v still_o think_v and_o work_v in_o her_o own_o will_n and_o busy_o exercise_v in_o she_o own_o imagination_n though_o the_o matter_n as_o in_o themselves_o may_v be_v good_a concern_v god_n yet_o thereby_o she_o incapacitates_fw-la herself_o from_o discern_v the_o still_a and_o small_a voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o so_o hurt_v herself_o great_o in_o that_o she_o neglect_v her_o chief_a business_n of_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n nothing_o less_o than_o if_o i_o shall_v busy_v myself_o cry_v out_o and_o speak_v of_o a_o business_n while_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o neglect_v to_o hear_v one_o who_o be_v quiet_o whisper_v into_o my_o ear_n and_o inform_v i_o in_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o needful_a for_o i_o to_o hear_v and_o know_v concern_v that_o business_n and_o since_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a work_n of_o a_o christian_n to_o know_v the_o
to_o be_v soothe_v up_o and_o lull_v asleep_o in_o thy_o sin_n by_o the_o flatter_a of_o court-parasit_n who_o by_o their_o fawn_a be_v the_o ruin_n of_o many_o prince_n there_o be_v no_o king_n in_o the_o world_n who_o can_v so_o experimental_o testify_v of_o god_n providence_n and_o goodness_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o who_o rule_v so_o many_o free_a people_n so_o many_o true_a christian_n which_o thing_n render_v thy_o government_n more_o honourable_a thyself_o more_o considerable_a than_o the_o accession_n of_o many_o nation_n fill_v with_o slavish_a and_o superstitious_a soul_n thou_o have_v taste_v of_o prosperity_n and_o adversity_n thou_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v banish_v thy_o native_a country_n to_o be_v overrule_v as_o well_o as_o to_o rule_v and_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o be_v oppress_v thou_o have_v reason_n to_o know_v how_o hateful_a the_o oppressor_n be_v both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n if_o after_o all_o these_o warning_n and_o advertisement_n thou_o do_v not_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n withal_o thy_o heart_n but_o forget_v he_o who_o remember_v thou_o in_o thy_o distress_n and_o give_v up_o thyself_o to_o follow_v lust_n and_o vanity_n sure_o great_a will_v be_v thy_o condemnation_n against_o which_o snare_n as_o well_o as_o the_o temptation_n of_o those_o that_o may_v or_o do_v feed_v thou_o and_o prompt_v thou_o to_o evil_a the_o most_o excellent_a and_o prevalent_a remedy_n will_v be_v to_o apply_v thyself_o to_o that_o light_n of_o christ_n which_o shine_v in_o thy_o conscience_n which_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v flatter_v thou_o nor_o suffer_v thou_o to_o be_v at_o ease_n in_o thy_o sin_n but_o do_v and_o will_v deal_v plain_o and_o faithful_o with_o thou_o as_o those_o that_o be_v follower_n thereof_o have_v also_o do_v god_n almighty_a who_o have_v so_o signal_o hitherto_o visit_v thou_o with_o his_o love_n so_o touch_v and_o reach_v thy_o heart_n ere_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o visitation_n be_v expire_v that_o thou_o may_v effectual_o turn_v to_o he_o so_o as_o to_o improve_v thy_o place_n and_o station_n for_o his_o name_n so_o wish_v so_o pray_v thy_o faithful_a friend_n and_o subject_a robert_n barclay_n from_o ury_n the_o place_n of_o my_o pilgrimage_n in_o my_o native_a country_n of_o scotland_n the_o 25_o of_o the_o month_n call_v november_n in_o the_o year_n 1675._o r._n b._n unto_o the_o friendly_a reader_n wish_v salvation_n forasmuch_o as_o that_o which_o above_o all_o thing_n i_o propose_v to_o myself_o be_v to_o declare_v and_o defend_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o service_n whereof_o i_o have_v give_v up_o and_o devote_v myself_o and_o all_o that_o be_v i_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o for_o its_o sake_n by_o the_o help_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n i_o may_v not_o attempt_v and_o in_o this_o confidence_n i_o do_v sometime_o ago_o publish_v certain_a proposition_n of_o divinity_n comprehend_v brief_o the_o chief_a principle_n and_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n which_o appear_v not_o unprofitable_a to_o some_o and_o be_v beyond_o my_o expectation_n well_o receive_v both_o by_o foreigner_n though_o dissent_v from_o we_o albeit_o also_o oppose_v by_o some_o envious_a one_o do_v so_o far_o prevail_v as_o in_o some_o part_n to_o remove_v that_o false_a and_o monstruous_a opinion_n which_o lie_v fame_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o our_o adversary_n have_v implant_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o concern_v we_o and_o our_o doctrine_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o not_o fit_a to_o spare_v my_o pain_n and_o labour_n therefore_o be_v act_v by_o the_o same_o measure_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n and_o the_o like_a design_n of_o propagate_a the_o truth_n by_o which_o i_o publish_v the_o proposition_n i_o judge_v it_o meet_v to_o explain_v they_o somewhat_o more_o large_o at_o this_o time_n and_o defend_v they_o by_o certain_a argument_n perhaps_o my_o method_n of_o writing_n may_v seem_v not_o only_o different_a but_o even_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v common_o use_v by_o the_o man_n call_v divine_n with_o which_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v for_o that_o i_o confess_v myself_o to_o be_v not_o only_o no_o imitator_n and_o admirer_n of_o the_o schoolman_n but_o a_o opposer_n and_o despiser_n of_o they_o as_o such_o by_o who_o labour_n i_o judge_v the_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v better_v that_o it_o be_v rather_o destroy_v neither_o have_v i_o seek_v to_o accommodate_v this_o my_o work_n to_o itch_a ear_n who_o desire_n rather_o to_o comprehend_v in_o their_o head_n the_o sublime_a notion_n of_o truth_n than_o to_o embrace_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n for_o what_o i_o have_v write_v come_v more_o from_o my_o heart_n than_o from_o my_o head_n what_o i_o have_v hear_v with_o the_o ear_n of_o my_o soul_n and_o see_v with_o my_o inward_a eye_n and_o my_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n and_o what_o have_v be_v inward_o manifest_v to_o i_o of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n that_o do_v i_o declare_v not_o so_o much_o mind_v the_o eloquence_n and_o excellency_n of_o speech_n as_o desire_v to_o demonstrate_v the_o efficacy_n and_o operation_n of_o truth_n and_o if_o i_o err_v sometime_o in_o the_o former_a it_o be_v not_o great_a matter_n for_o i_o act_v not_o here_o the_o grammarian_n or_o the_o orator_n but_o the_o christian_a and_o therefore_o in_o this_o i_o have_v follow_v the_o certain_a rule_n of_o the_o divine_a light_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o make_v a_o end_n what_o i_o have_v write_v be_v write_v not_o to_o feed_v the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n or_o rather_o vain_a pride_n of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o starve_v and_o oppose_v it_o we_o the_o little_a preface_n prefix_v to_o the_o proposition_n do_v show_v which_o with_o the_o title_n of_o they_o be_v as_o follow_v thesis_n theologicae_fw-la to_o the_o clergy_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o unto_o who_o hand_n these_o may_v come_v but_o more_o particular_o to_o the_o doctor_n professor_n and_o student_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o university_n and_o school_n of_o great_a britain_n whether_o prelatical_a presbyterian_a or_o any_o other_o robert_n barclay_n a_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n and_o one_o of_o those_o who_o in_o derision_n be_v call_v quaker_n wish_v unfeigned_a repentance_n unto_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n friend_n unto_o you_o these_o follow_a proposition_n be_v offer_v in_o which_o they_o be_v read_v and_o consider_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o may_v perceive_v that_o simple_a naked_a truth_n which_o man_n by_o his_o wisdom_n have_v render_v so_o obscure_a and_o mysterious_a that_o the_o world_n be_v even_o burden_a with_o the_o great_a and_o voluminous_a tractate_v which_o be_v make_v about_o it_o and_o by_o their_o vain_a jangle_n and_o commentary_n by_o which_o it_o be_v render_v a_o hundred_o fold_n more_o dark_a and_o intricate_a than_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v which_o great_a learning_n so_o account_v of_o to_o wit_n your_o school_n divinity_n which_o take_v up_o almost_o a_o man_n whole_a life-time_n to_o learn_v bring_v not_o a_o whit_n near_o to_o god_n neither_o make_v any_o man_n less_o wicked_a or_o more_o righteous_a than_o he_o be_v therefore_o have_v god_n lay_v aside_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a and_o the_o disputer_n of_o this_o world_n and_o have_v choose_v a_o few_o despicable_a and_o unlearned_a instrument_n as_o to_o letter-learning_n as_o he_o do_v fisherman_n of_o old_a to_o publish_v his_o pure_a and_o naked_a truth_n and_o to_o free_v it_o of_o these_o mist_n and_o fog_n wherewith_o the_o clergy_n have_v cloud_v it_o that_o the_o people_n may_v admire_v and_o maintain_v they_o and_o among_o several_a other_o who_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o make_v know_v these_o thing_n see_v i_o also_o have_v receive_v in_o measure_n grace_n to_o be_v a_o dispenser_n of_o the_o same_o gospel_n it_o seem_v good_a unto_o i_o according_a to_o my_o duty_n to_o offer_v unto_o you_o these_o proposition_n though_o short_a yet_o be_v weighty_a comprehend_v much_o and_o declare_v what_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o knowledge_n be_v even_o of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o lead_v to_o life_n eternal_a which_o be_v here_o witness_v of_o and_o the_o testimony_n thereof_o leave_v unto_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o your_o conscience_n farewell_o r._n b._n the_o first_o proposition_n concern_v the_o true_a foundation_n of_o knowledge_n see_v the_o height_n of_o all_o happiness_n be_v place_v in_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v the_o true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v the_o true_a and_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o knowledge_n be_v that_o 17.3_o which_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o first_o place_n
it_o be_v answer_v §_o xiii_o the_o most_o usual_a be_v that_o these_o revelation_n be_v uncertain_a but_o this_o bespeak_v much_o ignorance_n in_o the_o opposer_n for_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o thesis_fw-la and_o the_o hypothesis_n that_o be_v betwixt_o the_o proposition_n and_o supposition_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o true_a and_o undoubted_a revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a and_o another_o thing_n to_o affirm_v that_o this_o or_o that_o particular_a person_n or_o people_n be_v lead_v infallible_o by_o this_o revelation_n in_o what_o they_o speak_v or_o write_v because_o they_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o lead_v by_o the_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o first_o be_v only_o by_o we_o assert_v the_o latter_a may_v be_v call_v in_o question_n the_o question_n be_v not_o who_o be_v or_o be_v not_o so_o lead_v but_o whether_o all_o ought_v not_o or_o may_v not_o be_v so_o lead_v see_v then_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o christ_n have_v promise_v his_o spirit_n to_o lead_v his_o child_n and_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o both_o aught_o and_o may_v be_v lead_v by_o it_o if_o any_o depart_n from_o this_o certain_a guide_n in_o deed_n and_o yet_o in_o word_n pretend_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o into_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o good_a it_o will_v not_o from_o thence_o follow_v that_o the_o true_a guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v uncertain_a or_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v no_o more_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o sun_n show_v not_o light_n because_o a_o blind_a man_n or_o one_o who_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n fall_v into_o a_o ditch_n at_o noon_n day_n for_o want_n of_o light_n or_o that_o no_o word_n be_v speak_v because_o a_o deaf_a man_n hear_v they_o not_o or_o that_o a_o garden_n full_a of_o fragrant_a flower_n have_v no_o sweet_a smell_n because_o he_o that_o have_v lose_v his_o smell_a do_v not_o savour_v it_o the_o fault_n than_o be_v in_o the_o organ_n and_o not_o in_o the_o object_n all_o these_o mistake_v therefore_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o weakness_n or_o wickedness_n of_o man_n and_o not_o to_o that_o holy_a spirit_n such_o as_o bend_v themselves_o most_o against_o this_o certain_a and_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n use_v common_o to_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o the_o old_a gnostic_n and_o the_o late_a monstruous_a and_o mischievous_a act_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n of_o munster_n all_o which_o touch_v we_o nothing_o at_o all_o neither_o weaken_v a_o whit_n our_o most_o true_a doctrine_n wherefore_o as_o a_o most_o sure_a bulwark_n against_o such_o kind_n of_o assault_n be_v subjoin_v that_o other_o part_n of_o our_o proposition_n thus_o moreover_o these_o divine_a and_o inward_a revelation_n which_o we_o establish_v as_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o they_o do_v not_o so_o neither_o can_v they_o at_o any_o time_n contradict_v the_o scripture_n testimony_n or_o find_v reason_n beside_o the_o intrinsic_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n of_o this_o assertion_n we_o can_v bold_o affirm_v it_o from_o our_o certain_a and_o bless_a experience_n for_o this_o spirit_n never_o deceive_v we_o never_o act_v nor_o move_v we_o to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v amiss_o but_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a in_o its_o revelation_n which_o be_v evident_o discern_v of_o we_o as_o we_o wait_v in_o that_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a light_n of_o god_n that_o proper_a and_o fit_a organ_n in_o which_o they_o be_v receive_v therefore_o if_o any_o reason_n after_o this_o manner_n that_o because_o some_o wicked_a ungodly_a devilish_a man_n have_v commit_v wicked_a action_n and_o have_v yet_o more_o wicked_o assert_v that_o they_o be_v lead_v into_o these_o thing_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n therefore_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o lean_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o seek_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o i_o utter_o deny_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o proposition_n which_o be_v it_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o true_a then_o will_v all_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o hope_v of_o salvation_n become_v uncertain_a and_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v turn_v into_o mere_a scepticism_n for_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n i_o may_v reason_v thus_o because_o eve_n be_v deceive_v by_o the_o lie_a of_o the_o serpent_n therefore_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v trust_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n because_o the_o old_a world_n be_v delude_v by_o evil_a spirit_n therefore_o ought_v neither_o noah_n nor_o abraham_n nor_o moses_n to_o have_v trust_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o a_o lie_a spirit_n speak_v through_o the_o four_o hundred_o prophet_n that_o persuade_v achab_n to_o go_v up_o and_o fight_v at_o ramoth_n gilead_n therefore_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o micajah_n be_v uncertain_a and_o dangerous_a to_o be_v follow_v because_o there_o be_v seduce_a spirit_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n of_o old_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o good_a or_o uncertain_a to_o follow_v the_o anoint_v which_o teach_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v truth_n and_o no_o lye_n who_o dare_v say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o necessary_a consequence_n moreover_o not_o only_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o church_n of_o god_n of_o old_a be_v hereby_o render_v uncertain_a but_o also_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o christian_n now_o be_v liable_a to_o the_o like_a hazard_n even_o of_o those_o who_o seek_v a_o foundation_n for_o their_o faith_n elsewhere_o than_o from_o the_o spirit_n for_o i_o shall_v prove_v by_o a_o inevitable_a argument_n ab_fw-la incommodo_fw-la i._n e._n from_o the_o inconveniency_n of_o it_o that_o if_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v upon_o that_o account_n and_o that_o man_n may_v not_o depend_v upon_o it_o as_o their_o guide_n because_o some_o while_o pretend_v thereunto_o commit_v great_a evil_n that_o then_o nor_o tradition_n nor_o the_o scripture_n nor_o reason_n which_o the_o papist_n protestant_n and_o socinian_o do_v respective_o make_v the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v any_o whit_n more_o certain_a the_o romanist_n reckon_v it_o a_o error_n to_o celebrate_v easter_n any_o other_o way_n than_o that_o church_n do_v this_o can_v only_o be_v decide_v by_o tradition_n and_o yet_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o equal_o lay_v claim_v to_o tradition_n with_o herself_o do_v it_o otherwise_o yea_o so_o little_a effectual_a be_v tradition_n to_o decide_v the_o case_n that_o polycarpus_n the_o disciple_n of_o john_n and_o anicetus_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 26._o who_o immediate_o succeed_v they_o according_a to_o who_o example_n both_o side_n conclude_v the_o question_n ought_v to_o be_v decide_v can_v not_o agree_v here_o of_o necessity_n one_o behove_v to_o err_v and_o that_o follow_a tradition_n will_v the_o papist_n now_o judge_v we_o deal_v fair_o by_o they_o if_o we_o shall_v thence_o aver_v that_o tradition_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v beside_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o far_o great_a importance_n the_o same_o difficulty_n will_v occur_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o many_o do_v affirm_v and_o that_o by_o tradition_n that_o in_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n the_o roman_a prelate_n never_o assume_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a shepherd_n nor_o be_v acknowledge_v as_o such_o and_o as_o that_o which_o altogether_o overturn_v this_o presidency_n there_o be_v that_o allege_v and_o that_o from_o tradition_n also_o that_o peter_n never_o see_v rome_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v his_o successor_n seqq_fw-la will_v you_o romanist_n think_v this_o sound_a reason_n to_o say_v as_o you_o do_v many_o have_v be_v deceive_v and_o err_v grievous_o in_o trust_v to_o tradition_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o reject_v all_o tradition_n yea_o even_o those_o by_o which_o we_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a and_o as_o we_o think_v prove_v the_o truth_n last_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o romish_a and_o greek_a church_n do_v debate_v whole_a session_n long_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o one_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o epiphanius_n and_o basilius_n neither_o can_v they_o ever_o agree_v about_o it_o second_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n the_o same_o difficulty_n occur_v the_o lutheran_n affirm_v they_o believe_v consubstantiation_n by_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o calvinist_n deny_v as_o that_o which_o they_o say_v according_a to_o the_o same_o scripture_n be_v a_o gross_a error_n the_o calvinist_n again_o affirm_v absolute_a reprobation_n which_o the_o arminian_n deny_v affirm_v the_o contrary_a wherein_o both_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o matter_n shall_v i_o argue_v thus_o then_o to_o the_o calvinist_n here_o the_o
only_o rule_v to_o try_v his_o doctrine_n by_o so_o neither_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o though_o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o jew_n as_o be_v a_o principle_n already_o believe_v by_o they_o to_o try_v his_o doctrine_n that_o from_o thence_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v account_v the_o principal_a or_o only_a rule_n §_o ix_o the_o last_o and_o which_o at_o first_o view_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o great_a objection_n be_v this_o obj._n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o adequate_a principal_a and_o only_a rule_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o complete_a nor_o the_o canon_n fill_v that_o if_o man_n be_v now_o immediate_o lead_v and_o rule_v by_o the_o spirit_n they_o may_v add_v new_a scripture_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o old_a whereas_o every_o one_o that_o add_v it_o curse_v yea_o what_o assurance_n have_v we_o but_o at_o this_o rate_n every_o one_o may_v bring_v in_o a_o new_a gospel_n according_a to_o his_o fancy_n the_o dangerous_a consequence_n insinuate_v in_o this_o objection_n be_v full_o answer_v in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o last_o proposition_n in_o what_o be_v say_v a_o little_a before_o offer_v free_o to_o disclaim_v all_o pretend_a revelation_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o if_o it_o be_v urge_v that_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o deny_v these_o consequence_n obj._n if_o they_o natural_o follow_v from_o your_o doctrine_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n i_o answer_v we_o have_v prove_v both_o these_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o necessary_a according_a to_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o to_o fasten_v evil_a consequence_n upon_o they_o which_o we_o make_v appear_v do_v not_o follow_v be_v not_o to_o accuse_v we_o but_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o preach_v they_o but_o second_o we_o have_v shut_v the_o door_n upon_o all_o such_o doctrine_n in_o this_o very_a position_n affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n give_v a_o full_a and_o ample_a testimony_n to_o all_o the_o principal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n for_o we_o do_v firm_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o gospel_n or_o doctrine_n to_o be_v preach_v but_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o do_v free_o subscribe_v to_o that_o say_n let_v he_o that_o preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n 1.8.9_o than_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n be_v accurse_v so_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o a_o revelation_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n and_o new_a doctrine_n and_o a_o new_a revelation_n of_o the_o good_a old_a gospel_n and_o doctrine_n the_o last_o we_o plead_v for_o but_o the_o first_o we_o utter_o deny_v for_o we_o firm_o believe_v that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v any_o man_n lay_v than_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v already_o but_o that_o this_o revelation_n be_v necessary_a we_o have_v already_o prove_v and_o this_o distinction_n do_v sufficient_o guard_v we_o against_o the_o hazard_n insinuate_v in_o the_o objection_n as_o to_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o fill_v canon_n i_o see_v no_o necessity_n of_o believe_v it_o and_o if_o these_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n will_v be_v consistent_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v of_o my_o judgement_n see_v it_o be_v simple_o impossible_a to_o prove_v the_o canon_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o any_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o these_o book_n and_o just_a these_o and_o no_o other_o be_v canonical_a as_o all_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v how_o can_v they_o then_o evite_v this_o argument_n that_o which_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n be_v no_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o book_n precise_o neither_o more_o or_o less_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o shall_v allege_v obj._n that_o the_o admit_v of_o any_o other_o book_n to_o be_v now_o write_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n may_v infer_v the_o admission_n of_o new_a doctrine_n i_o deny_v that_o consequence_n for_o the_o principal_a of_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v thence_o that_o the_o rest_n be_v impertinent_a or_o useless_a if_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o bring_v to_o we_o any_o of_o these_o book_n which_o by_o the_o injury_n of_o time_n be_v lose_v which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o prophecy_n of_o enoch_n the_o book_n of_o nathan_n etc._n etc._n or_o the_o three_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o may_v not_o receive_v they_o and_o place_v they_o with_o the_o rest_n that_o which_o displease_v i_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v first_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a and_o principal_a rule_n and_o yet_o make_v a_o great_a article_n of_o faith_n of_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n can_v give_v we_o no_o light_n in_o as_o for_o instance_n how_o shall_v a_o protestant_n prove_v by_o scripture_n to_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n to_o be_v authentic_a that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v first_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o it_o contradict_v not_o the_o rest_n beside_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o it_o in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n perhaps_o these_o man_n think_v it_o do_v contradict_v paul_n in_o relation_n to_o faith_n and_o work_n but_o if_o that_o shall_v be_v grant_v it_o will_v as_o well_o follow_v that_o every_o writer_n that_o contradict_v not_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v put_v into_o the_o canon_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n these_o man_n fall_v into_o a_o great_a absurdity_n than_o they_o fix_v upon_o we_o for_o thus_o they_o will_v equal_v every_o one_o the_o write_n of_o their_o own_o sect_n with_o the_o scripture_n for_o i_o suppose_v they_o judge_v their_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n will_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v bind_v up_o with_o the_o bible_n and_o yet_o it_o seem_v impossible_a according_a to_o their_o principle_n to_o bring_v any_o better_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n to_o be_v authentic_a there_o be_v then_o this_o unavoidable_a necessity_n to_o say_v we_o know_v it_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n from_o which_o it_o be_v write_v or_o otherwise_o to_o step_v back_o to_o rome_n and_o say_v we_o know_v by_o tradition_n that_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a and_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a let_v they_o find_v amid_o if_o they_o can_v so_o that_o out_o of_o this_o objection_n we_o shall_v draw_v a_o unanswerable_a argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la to_o our_o purpose_n that_o which_o can_v assure_v i_o concern_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o the_o primary_n adequate_a only_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o scripture_n can_v thus_o assure_v i_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n i_o prove_v the_o assumption_n thus_o that_o which_o can_v assure_v i_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n that_o such_o book_n be_v only_o to_o be_v admit_v and_o the_o apochrypha_n to_o be_v exclude_v can_v assure_v i_o of_o this_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n and_o last_o as_o to_o these_o word_n rev._n 22.18_o that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v add_v unto_o these_o thing_n obj._n god_n shall_v add_v unto_o he_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n i_o desire_v they_o will_v show_v i_o how_o it_o relate_v to_o anything_o else_o than_o to_o that_o particular_a prophecy_n it_o say_v not_o now_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v fill_v up_o no_o man_n be_v to_o write_v more_o from_o that_o spirit_n yea_o do_v not_o all_o confess_v that_o there_o have_v be_v prophecy_n and_o true_a prophet_n since_o the_o papist_n deny_v it_o not_o and_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o john_n hus_n prophesy_v of_o the_o reformation_n be_v he_o therefore_o curse_a or_o do_v he_o therein_o evil_a i_o can_v give_v many_o other_o example_n confess_v by_o themselves_o but_o moreover_o the_o same_o be_v in_o effect_n command_v long_o before_o prov._n 30.6_o add_v thou_o not_o unto_o his_o word_n lest_o he_o reprove_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v find_v a_o lyar._n yet_o how_o many_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v write_v after_o and_o the_o same_o be_v say_v by_o moses_n deut._n 4.2_o you_o shall_v not_o add_v unto_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o neither_o shall_v you_o diminish_v aught_o from_o it_o so_o that_o
history_n of_o christ_n passion_n unto_o such_o who_o live_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o outward_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v unknown_a have_v well_o improve_v the_o first_o and_o common_a grace_n for_o as_o hence_o it_o well_o follow_v that_o some_o of_o the_o old_a philosopher_n may_v have_v be_v save_v so_o also_o may_v some_o who_o by_o providence_n be_v cast_v into_o those_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n be_v want_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n if_o they_o receive_v and_o resist_v not_o that_o grace_n a_o manifestation_n whereof_o be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o 12.7_o this_o most_o certain_a doctrine_n be_v then_o receive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o evangelical_n and_o saving_n light_n and_o grace_n in_o all_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n both_o in_o the_o death_n of_o his_o belove_a son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o light_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v against_o all_o the_o objection_n of_o such_o as_o deny_v it_o therefore_o christ_n have_v taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n not_o only_o for_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o some_o vain_o talk_v but_o for_o every_o man_n of_o all_o kind_n the_o benefit_n of_o who_o offer_v be_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o such_o who_o have_v the_o destinct_n outward_a knowledge_n of_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n as_o the_o same_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o even_o unto_o those_o who_o be_v necessary_o exclude_v from_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o knowledge_n by_o some_o inevitable_a accident_n which_o knowledge_n we_o willing_o confess_v to_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a but_o not_o absolute_o needful_a unto_o such_o from_o who_o god_n himself_o have_v withhold_v it_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o death_n though_o ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n if_o they_o suffer_v his_o seed_n and_o light_n enlighten_v their_o heart_n to_o take_v place_n in_o which_o light_a communion_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v enjoy_v so_o as_o of_o wicked_a man_n to_o become_v holy_a and_o lover_n of_o that_o power_n by_o who_o inward_a and_o secret_a touch_n they_o feel_v themselves_o turn_v from_o the_o evil_a to_o the_o good_a and_o learn_v to_o do_v to_o other_o as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v by_o in_o which_o christ_n himself_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v include_v as_o they_o have_v then_o false_o and_o erroneous_o teach_v who_o have_v deny_v christ_n to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o sufficient_o teach_v the_o truth_n who_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o have_v add_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n thereof_o in_o order_n to_o obtain_v its_o save_a effect_n among_o who_o the_o remonstrant_n of_o holland_n have_v be_v chief_o want_v and_o many_o other_o assertor_n of_o universal_a redemption_n in_o that_o they_o have_v not_o place_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o salvation_n in_o that_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n principle_n of_o light_n and_o life_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n which_o be_v excellent_o and_o evident_o hold_v forth_o in_o these_o scripture_n gen._n 6.3_o deut._n 30.14_o joh._n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o 16._o rom._n 10.8_o tit._n 2.11_o hitherto_o we_o have_v consider_v man_v fall_v lose_v corrupt_a and_o degenerate_v condition_n now_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o inquire_v how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v he_o may_v come_v to_o be_v free_v out_o of_o this_o miserable_a and_o deprave_a condition_n which_o in_o these_o two_o proposition_n be_v declare_v and_o demonstrate_v which_o i_o think_v meet_v to_o place_v together_o because_o of_o their_o affinity_n the_o one_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o explanation_n of_o the_o other_o as_o for_o that_o doctrine_n which_o these_o proposition_n chief_o strike_v at_o to_o wit_n absolute_a reprobation_n according_a to_o which_o some_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o assert_v that_o god_n by_o a_o eternal_a and_o immutable_a decree_n have_v predestinate_v to_o eternal_a damnation_n the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n not_o consider_v as_o make_v much_o less_o as_o fall_v without_o any_o respect_n to_o their_o disobedience_n or_o sin_n but_o only_o for_o the_o demonstrate_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o that_o for_o the_o bring_v this_o about_o he_o have_v appoint_v these_o miserable_a soul_n necessary_o to_o walk_v in_o their_o wicked_a way_n that_o so_o his_o justice_n may_v lay_v hold_n on_o they_o and_o that_o god_n do_v therefore_o not_o only_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v liable_a to_o this_o misery_n in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n by_o withhold_v from_o they_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o even_o in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v and_o salvation_n by_o christ_n be_v offer_v who_o though_o he_o public_o invite_v they_o yet_o he_o just_o condemn_v for_o disobedience_n albeit_o he_o have_v with_o hold_v from_o they_o all_o grace_n by_o which_o they_o can_v have_v lay_v hold_v on_o the_o gospel_n viz._n because_o he_o have_v by_o a_o secret_a will_n unknown_a to_o all_o man_n ordain_v and_o decree_v without_o any_o respect_n have_v to_o their_o disobedience_n or_o sin_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o obey_v and_o that_o the_o offer_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v never_o prove_v effectual_a for_o their_o salvation_n but_o only_o serve_v to_o aggravate_v and_o occasion_v their_o great_a condemnation_n i_o say_v as_o to_o this_o horrible_a and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n or_o cause_n be_v common_a with_o many_o other_o who_o have_v both_o wise_o and_o learned_o according_a to_o scripture_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n refute_v it_o see_v then_o that_o so_o much_o and_o so_o well_o be_v say_v already_o against_o this_o doctrine_n that_o little_o can_v be_v superad_v except_o what_o have_v be_v say_v already_o i_o shall_v be_v short_a in_o this_o respect_n yet_o because_o it_o lie_v so_o in_o opposition_n to_o my_o way_n i_o can_v let_v it_o altogether_o pass_v §_o i._o first_o we_o may_v safe_o call_v this_o doctrine_n a_o novelty_n see_v the_o first_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o it_o for_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n testimony_n and_o to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n teacher_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n pass_v it_o over_o with_o a_o profound_a silence_n the_o first_o foundation_n of_o it_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o late_a write_n of_o augustin_n who_o in_o his_o heat_n against_o pelagius_n let_v fall_v some_o expression_n which_o some_o have_v unhappy_o glean_v up_o to_o the_o establish_n of_o this_o error_n thereby_o contradict_v the_o truth_n and_o sufficient_o gainsaying_n many_o other_o and_o many_o more_o and_o frequent_a expression_n of_o the_o same_o augustine_n afterward_o be_v this_o doctrine_n foment_v by_o dominicus_n a_o friar_n and_o the_o monk_n of_o his_o order_n and_o at_o last_o unhappy_o take_v up_o by_o john_n calvin_n otherwise_o a_o man_n in_o divers_a respect_n to_o be_v commend_v to_o the_o great_a stain_v of_o his_o reputation_n and_o defamation_n both_o of_o the_o protestant_n and_o christian_a religion_n which_o though_o it_o receive_v the_o degree_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n for_o its_o confirmation_n have_v since_o lose_v ground_n and_o begin_v to_o be_v explode_v by_o most_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o piety_n in_o all_o protestant_a church_n however_o we_o shall_v not_o quarrel_v for_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o ancient_n paucity_n of_o its_o assertor_n or_o for_o the_o learnedness_n of_o its_o opposer_n if_o we_o do_v observe_v it_o to_o have_v any_o real_a bottom_n in_o the_o write_n or_o say_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o high_o injurious_a to_o god_n himself_o to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n and_o to_o the_o power_n virtue_n nobility_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o bless_a gospel_n and_o last_o unto_o all_o mankind_n §_o ii_o first_o it_o be_v high_o injurious_a to_o god_n because_o it_o make_v he_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n which_o of_o all_o thing_n be_v most_o contrary_a to_o his_o nature_n i_o confess_v the_o assertor_n of_o this_o principle_n deny_v this_o consequence_n but_o that_o be_v but_o a_o pure_a illusion_n see_v it_o so_o natural_o follow_v from_o their_o doctrine_n and_o be_v equal_o ridiculous_a as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v pertinacious_o deny_v that_o one_o and_o two_o make_v three_o for_o if_o god_n have_v decree_v that_o the_o reprobate_v one_o shall_v perish_v without_o all_o respect_n to_o their_o evil_a
of_o the_o glorious_a dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n appear_v all_o at_o once_o the_o work_n of_o the_o first_o witness_n be_v more_o to_o testify_v against_o and_o discover_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o apostasy_n than_o to_o establish_v the_o truth_n in_o purity_n he_o that_o come_v to_o build_v a_o new_a city_n must_v first_o remove_v the_o old_a rubbish_n before_o he_o can_v see_v to_o lay_v a_o new_a foundation_n and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o a_o house_n great_o pollute_v and_o full_a of_o dirt_n will_v first_o sweep_v away_o and_o remove_v the_o filth_n before_o he_o put_v up_o his_o own_o good_a and_o new_a furniture_n the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n dispell_n the_o darkness_n and_o make_v we_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o conspicuous_a but_o the_o distinct_a discover_v and_o discern_v of_o thing_n o_o as_o to_o make_v a_o certain_a and_o perfect_a observation_n be_v reserve_v for_o the_o arise_v of_o the_o sun_n and_o its_o shine_a in_o full_a brightness_n and_o we_o can_v from_o a_o certain_a experience_n bold_o affirm_v that_o the_o not_o wait_v for_o this_o but_o build_v among_o yea_o and_o with_o the_o old_a popish_a rubbish_n and_o set_v up_o before_o a_o full_a purgation_n have_v be_v to_o most_o protestant_n the_o foundation_n of_o many_o a_o mistake_n and_o a_o occasion_n of_o unspeakable_a hurt_n therefore_o the_o lord_n god_n who_o as_o he_o see_v meet_v do_v communicate_v and_o make_v know_v to_o man_n the_o more_o full_a evident_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o his_o everlasting_a truth_n have_v be_v please_v to_o reserve_v the_o more_o full_a discovery_n of_o this_o glorious_a and_o evangelical_n dispensation_n to_o this_o our_o age_n albeit_o divers_a testimony_n have_v thereunto_o be_v bear_v by_o some_o note_a man_n in_o several_a age_n as_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v and_o for_o the_o great_a augmentation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o no_o man_n may_v have_v whereof_o to_o boast_v have_v raise_v up_o a_o few_o despicable_a and_o illiterate_a man_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n mechanic_n to_o be_v the_o dispensator_n of_o it_o by_o which_o gospel_n all_o the_o scruple_n doubt_n hesitation_n and_o objection_n above_o mention_v be_v easy_o and_o evident_o answer_v and_o the_o justice_n as_o well_o as_o mercy_n of_o god_n according_a to_o their_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a harmony_n be_v exhibit_v establish_v and_o confirm_v according_a to_o which_o certain_a light_n and_o gospel_n as_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o have_v be_v manifest_v to_o we_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o we_o fortify_v by_o our_o own_o sensible_a experience_n and_o seal_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o can_v confident_o affirm_v and_o clear_o evince_v according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o follow_a point_n §_o xi_o first_o that_o god_n who_o out_o of_o his_o infinite_a love_n send_v his_o son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n into_o the_o world_n who_o taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n have_v give_v to_o every_o man_n whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n turk_n or_o scythian_a indian_a or_o barbarian_a of_o whatsoever_o nation_n country_n or_o place_n a_o certain_a day_n or_o time_n of_o visitation_n during_o which_o day_n or_o time_n it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o christ_n death_n second_o that_o for_o this_o end_n god_n have_v communicate_v and_o give_v unto_o every_o man_n a_o measure_n of_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o son_n a_o measure_n of_o grace_n or_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o the_o scripture_n express_v by_o several_a name_n as_o sometime_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o kingdom_n mat._n 13.18.19_o the_o light_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n manifest_v eph._n 5.13_o the_o word_n of_o god_n rom._n 10.18_o or_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n give_v to_o profit_n withal_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o a_o talon_n mat._n 25.15_o a_o little_a leaven_n the_o gospel_n preach_v in_o every_o creature_n col._n 1.23_o three_o that_o god_n in_o and_o by_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n invite_v call_v exhort_v and_o strive_v with_o every_o man_n in_o order_n to_o save_v they_o which_o as_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o not_o resist_v work_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o even_o of_o those_o who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o adam_n fall_n both_o by_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o misery_n and_o to_o be_v sharer_n in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n inward_o and_o by_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o his_o resurrection_n in_o become_v holy_a pure_a and_o righteous_a and_o recover_v of_o their_o sin_n by_o which_o also_o be_v save_v they_o that_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n outward_o in_o that_o it_o open_v their_o understanding_n right_o to_o use_v and_o apply_v the_o thing_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o save_a use_n of_o they_o but_o that_o this_o may_v be_v resist_v and_o reject_v in_o both_o in_o which_o then_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v resist_v and_o press_v down_o and_o christ_n to_o be_v again_o crucify_v and_o put_v to_o open_a shame_n in_o and_o among_o man_n and_o to_o to_o those_o as_o thus_o resist_v and_o refuse_v he_o he_o become_v their_o condemnation_n first_o then_o according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v excellent_o well_o exhibit_v in_o that_o none_o be_v necessary_o shut_v out_o from_o salvation_n and_o his_o justice_n be_v demonstrate_v in_o that_o he_o condemn_v none_o but_o such_o to_o who_o he_o real_o make_v offer_v of_o salvation_n afford_v they_o the_o mean_v sufficient_a thereunto_o second_o this_o doctrine_n if_o well_o weigh_v will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n salvation_n and_o assurance_n three_o it_o agree_v and_o answer_v with_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n promise_v and_o threat_n and_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o which_o the_o gospel_n salvation_n repentance_n be_v command_v to_o be_v preach_v to_o every_o creature_n without_o respect_n of_o nation_n kindred_n family_n or_o tongue_n four_o it_o magnify_v and_o commend_v the_o merit_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o it_o not_o only_o account_v they_o sufficient_a to_o save_v all_o but_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v bring_v so_o nigh_o unto_o all_o as_o thereby_o to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o near_a capacity_n of_o salvation_n five_o it_o exalt_v above_o all_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o which_o it_o attribute_v all_o good_a even_o the_o least_o and_o small_a action_n that_o be_v so_o ascribe_v thereunto_o not_o only_o the_o first_o beginning_n and_o motion_n of_o good_a but_o also_o the_o whole_a conversion_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n six_o it_o contradict_v overturns_a and_o enervate_v the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o pelagian_n semipelagian_n socinian_n and_o other_o who_o exalt_v the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o liberty_n of_o man_n will_n in_o that_o it_o whole_o exclude_v the_o natural_a man_n from_o have_v any_o place_n or_o portion_n in_o his_o own_o salvation_n by_o any_o act_n move_a or_o work_v of_o his_o own_o until_o he_o be_v first_o quicken_v raise_v up_o and_o act_v by_o god_n spirit_n seven_o as_o it_o make_v the_o whole_a salvation_n of_o man_n sole_o and_o alone_o to_o depend_v upon_o god_n so_o it_o make_v his_o condemnation_n whole_o and_o in_o every_o respect_n to_o be_v himself_o in_o that_o he_o refuse_v and_o resist_v somewhat_o that_o from_o god_n wrestle_v and_o strive_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o force_v he_o to_o acknowledge_v god_n just_a judgement_n in_o reject_v he_o and_o forsake_v of_o he_o eight_o it_o take_v away_o all_o ground_n of_o despair_n in_o that_o it_o give_v every_o one_o ground_n of_o hope_n and_o certain_a assurance_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v neither_o do_v feed_v any_o in_o security_n in_o that_o none_o be_v certain_a how_o soon_o their_o day_n may_v expire_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o constant_a incitement_n and_o provocation_n and_o lively_a encouragement_n to_o every_o man_n to_o forsake_v evil_a and_o close_o with_o that_o which_o be_v good_a nine_o it_o wonderful_o commend_v as_o well_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n among_o infidel_n as_o it_o manifest_v its_o own_o verity_n to_o all_o in_o that_o it_o be_v confirm_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o man_n see_v there_o be_v never_o yet_o a_o man_n find_v in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o earth_n however_o barbarous_a and_o wild_a but_o have_v acknowledge_v that_o at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o less_o or_o more_o he_o have_v find_v somewhat_o in_o his_o heart_n reprove_v he_o for_o some_o thing_n evil_a which_o he_o have_v
do_v threaten_v a_o certain_a horror_n if_o he_o continue_v in_o they_o as_o also_o promise_v and_o communicate_v a_o certain_a peace_n and_o sweetness_n as_o he_o have_v give_v way_n to_o it_o and_o not_o resist_v it_o ten_o it_o wonderful_o show_v the_o excellent_a wisdom_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o have_v make_v the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n so_o universal_a and_o comprehensive_a that_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o recur_v to_o those_o miraculous_a and_o strange_a way_n see_v according_o to_o this_o most_o true_a doctrine_n the_o gospel_n reach_v all_o of_o whatsoever_o condition_n age_n or_o nation_n eleven_o it_o be_v real_o and_o effective_o though_o not_o in_o so_o many_o word_n yet_o by_o deed_n establish_v and_o confirm_v by_o all_o the_o preacher_n promulgator_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o now_o be_v even_o by_o those_o that_o otherways_o in_o their_o judgement_n oppose_v this_o doctrine_n in_o that_o they_o all_o wherever_o they_o have_v be_v or_o be_v or_o whatsoever_o people_n place_n or_o country_n they_o come_v to_o do_v preach_v to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o every_o individual_a among_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v entreat_v and_o desire_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o have_v die_v for_o they_o so_o that_o what_o they_o deny_v in_o the_o general_n they_o acknowledge_v of_o every_o particular_a there_o be_v no_o man_n to_o who_o they_o do_v not_o preach_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n tell_v he_o jesus_n christ_n call_v and_o will_v he_o to_o believe_v and_o be_v save_v and_o that_o if_o he_o refuse_v he_o shall_v therefore_o be_v condemn_v and_o that_o his_o condemnation_n be_v of_o himself_o such_o be_v the_o evidence_n and_o virtue_n of_o truth_n that_o it_o constrain_v its_o adversary_n even_o against_o their_o will_n to_o plead_v for_o it_o last_o according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n the_o former_a argument_n use_v by_o the_o armenian_n and_o evit_v by_o the_o calvinist_n concern_v every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o be_v by_o alter_v the_o assumption_n render_v invincible_a thus_o that_o which_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v be_v true_a but_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v merciful_a unto_o he_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n this_o assumption_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v see_v his_o mercy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n and_o herein_o the_o scripture_n every_o way_n declare_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o be_v in_o that_o he_o invite_v and_o call_v sinner_n to_o repenance_n and_o have_v open_v a_o way_n of_o salvation_n for_o they_o so_o that_o though_o those_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o history_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n who_o never_o come_v to_o know_v of_o it_o yet_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v be_v merciful_a to_o they_o if_o they_o follow_v his_o way_n and_o that_o he_o be_v merciful_a unto_o they_o in_o that_o he_o reprove_v they_o for_o evil_a and_o incourage_v they_o to_o good_a neither_o ought_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v unmerciful_a to_o he_o or_o that_o he_o have_v from_o the_o beginning_n ordain_v he_o to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v be_v leave_v to_o his_o own_o evil_a inclination_n and_o so_o do_v wicked_o as_o a_o mean_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n which_o be_v it_o true_a as_o our_o adversary_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v of_o many_o thousand_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o a_o man_n may_v not_o believe_v for_o certain_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o manifest_o appear_v from_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o these_o good_a and_o excellent_a consequence_n follow_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o doctrine_n so_o from_o the_o probation_n of_o they_o it_o will_v yet_o more_o evident_o appear_v to_o which_o before_o i_o come_v it_o be_v requisite_a to_o speak_v somewhat_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o will_v bring_v great_a light_n to_o the_o matter_n for_o from_o the_o not_o right_a understanding_n of_o a_o matter_n under_o debate_n sometime_o both_o argument_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o objection_n on_o the_o other_o be_v bring_v which_o do_v no_o way_n hit_v the_o case_n and_o hereby_o also_o our_o sense_n and_o judgement_n therein_o will_v be_v more_o full_o understand_v and_o open_v §_o xii_o first_o then_o by_o this_o day_n and_o time_n of_o visitation_n which_o we_o say_v god_n give_v unto_o all_o during_o which_o they_o may_v be_v save_v we_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o whole_a time_n of_o every_o man_n life_n though_o to_o some_o it_o may_v be_v extend_v even_o to_o the_o very_a hour_n of_o death_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o thief_n convert_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o such_o a_o season_n at_o lest_o as_o sufficient_o exoner_v god_n of_o every_o man_n condemnation_n which_o to_o some_o may_v be_v soon_o and_o to_o other_o latter_a according_a as_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o wisdom_n see_v meet_v so_o that_o many_o man_n may_v outlive_v this_o day_n after_o which_o there_o may_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o they_o and_o god_n just_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v harden_v as_o a_o just_a punishment_n of_o their_o unbelief_n and_o even_o raise_v they_o up_o as_o instrument_n of_o wrath_n and_o make_v they_o a_o scourge_n one_o against_o another_o whence_o to_o man_n in_o this_o condition_n may_v be_v fit_o apply_v those_o scripture_n which_o be_v abuse_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n incite_v man_n necessary_o to_o sin_n this_o be_v notable_o express_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 1._o from_o ver_fw-la 17._o to_o the_o end_n but_o especial_o ver_n 28._o and_o even_o as_o they_o do_v not_o like_a to_o retain_v god_n in_o their_o knowledge_n god_n give_v they_o up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n to_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o many_o may_v out_o live_v this_o day_n of_o god_n gracious_a visitation_n unto_o they_o be_v show_v by_o the_o example_n of_o esau_n heb._n 12.16.17_o who_o sell_v his_o birth_n right_a so_o he_o have_v it_o once_o and_o be_v capable_a to_o have_v keep_v it_o but_o afterward_o when_o he_o will_v have_v inherit_v the_o blessing_n he_o be_v reject_v this_o appear_v also_o by_o christ_n weep_v over_o jerusalem_n luke_n 19.42_o say_n if_o thou_o have_v know_v in_o this_o thy_o day_n the_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o thy_o peace_n but_o now_o they_o be_v hide_v from_o thy_o eye_n which_o plain_o import_v a_o time_n when_o they_o may_v have_v know_v they_o which_o now_o be_v remove_v from_o they_o though_o they_o be_v yet_o alive_a but_o of_o this_o more_o shall_v be_v say_v hereafter_o §_o xiii_o second_o by_o this_o seed_n grace_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o light_n wherewith_o we_o say_v every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v and_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o it_o which_o strive_v with_o they_o in_o order_n to_o save_v they_o and_o which_o may_v by_o the_o stubbornness_n and_o wickedness_n of_o man_n will_n be_v quench_v bruise_a wound_a press_v down_o slay_v and_o crucify_v we_o understand_v not_o the_o proper_a essence_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n precise_o take_v which_o be_v not_o divisible_a into_o part_n and_o measure_n as_o be_v a_o most_o pure_a simple_a be_v void_a of_o all_o composition_n or_o division_n and_o therefore_o can_v neither_o be_v resist_v hurt_v wound_a crucify_a or_o slay_v by_o all_o the_o effort_n and_o strength_n of_o man_n but_o we_o understand_v a_o spiritual_a heavenly_a and_o invisible_a principle_n in_o which_o god_n as_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n dwell_v a_o measure_n of_o which_o divine_a and_o glorious_a life_n be_v in_o all_o man_n as_o a_o seed_n which_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n draw_v invite_v and_o incline_v to_o god_n and_o this_o we_o call_v vehiculum_fw-la dei_fw-la or_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n of_o which_o all_o the_o saint_n do_v feed_v and_o be_v thereby_o nourish_v unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o as_o every_o unrighteous_a action_n be_v witness_v against_o and_o reprove_v by_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n so_o by_o such_o action_n it_o be_v hurt_v wound_a and_o slay_v and_o resile_n or_o flee_v from_o they_o even_o as_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n flee_v from_o that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a nature_n to_o it_o now_o because_o it_o be_v never_o separate_v from_o god_n nor_o christ_n but_o where_o ever_o it_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n be_v as_o wrap_v up_o therein_o therefore_o and_o in_o that_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v resist_v god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v resist_v and_o where_o it_o be_v bear_v down_o god_n be_v say_v
will_n than_o obey_v god_n will_n have_v heap_v up_o sacrifice_n without_o obedience_n and_o think_v to_o deceive_v god_n as_o they_o do_v one_o another_o give_v he_o a_o show_n of_o reverence_n honour_n and_o worship_n while_o they_o be_v both_o inward_o estrange_v and_o alienate_v from_o his_o holy_a and_o righteous_a life_n and_o whole_o stranger_n to_o the_o pure_a breathe_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o which_o the_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n and_o worship_n be_v only_o offer_v up_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n relate_v to_o man_n duty_n towards_o god_n which_o among_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n have_v be_v more_o vitiate_a and_o in_o which_o the_o devil_n have_v more_o prevail_v than_o in_o abuse_v man_n mind_n concern_v this_o thing_n and_o as_o among_o many_o other_o so_o among_o those_o call_a christian_n nothing_o have_v be_v more_o out_o of_o order_n and_o more_o corrupt_v as_o some_o papist_n and_o all_o protestant_n do_v acknowledge_v as_o i_o free_o approve_v whatsoever_o the_o protestant_n have_v reform_v from_o papist_n in_o this_o respect_n so_o i_o meddle_v not_o at_o this_o time_n with_o their_o controversy_n about_o it_o only_o it_o suffice_v i_o with_o they_o to_o deny_v as_o no_o part_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n that_o abominable_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n the_o popish_a mass_n the_o adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n the_o veneration_n of_o relic_n the_o visitation_n of_o sepulcher_n and_o all_o these_o other_o superstitious_a ceremony_n confraternity_n and_o endless_a pilgrimage_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n which_o all_o may_v suffice_v to_o evince_v to_o protestant_n that_o antichrist_n have_v wrought_v more_o in_o this_o than_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o so_o it_o concern_v they_o narrow_o to_o consider_v whether_o herein_o they_o have_v make_v a_o clear_a and_o perfect_a reformation_n as_o to_o which_o stand_v the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o for_o we_o find_v many_o of_o the_o branch_n lop_v off_o by_o they_o but_o the_o root_n yet_o remain_v to_o wit_n a_o worship_n act_v in_o and_o from_o man_n will_n and_o spirit_n and_o not_o by_o and_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o the_o true_a christian_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n of_o god_n have_v be_v so_o early_o lose_v and_o man_n wisdom_n and_o will_n have_v so_o quick_o and_o thorough_o mix_v itself_o herein_o that_o both_o the_o apostasy_n in_o this_o respect_n have_v be_v great_a and_o the_o reformation_n herefrom_o as_o to_o the_o evil_a root_n most_o difficult_a therefore_o let_v not_o the_o reader_n sudden_o stumble_v at_o the_o account_n of_o our_o proposition_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o here_o we_o patient_o in_o this_o respect_n explain_v ourselves_o and_o i_o hope_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o though_o our_o manner_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o doctrine_n seem_v most_o singular_a and_o different_a from_o all_o 〈…〉_z of_o christian_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o according_a to_o the_o pure_a christian_a religion_n and_o indeed_o most_o needful_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o follow_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n of_o mistake_n for_o that_o i_o be_v necessitate_v to_o speak_v in_o few_o word_n and_o therefore_o more_o obscure_o and_o dubious_o in_o the_o proposition_n itself_o it_o be_v fit_a in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o explain_v and_o hold_v forth_o out_o sense_n and_o clear_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n §_o ii_o and_o first_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v that_o what_o be_v here_o affirm_v be_v speak_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o gospel_n time_n and_o not_o of_o the_o worship_n that_o be_v under_o or_o before_o the_o law_n for_o the_o particular_a command_n of_o god_n to_o man_n then_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o authorise_v we_o now_o to_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n else_o we_o may_v be_v suppose_v at_o present_a acceptable_a to_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o they_o do_v which_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v cease_v so_o that_o what_o may_v have_v be_v both_o commendable_a and_o acceptable_a under_o the_o law_n may_v just_o now_o be_v charge_v with_o superstition_n yea_o and_o idolatry_n so_o that_o impertinent_o in_o this_o respect_n do_v arnoldus_fw-la rage_n against_o this_o proposition_n exercit._fw-la theolog._n sect_n 44._o say_v that_o i_o deny_v all_o public_a worship_n and_o that_o according_a to_o i_o such_o as_o in_o enoch_n be_v time_n public_o begin_v to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o such_o as_o at_o the_o command_n of_o god_n go_v twice_o up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_n and_o that_o anna_n simeon_n mary_n etc._n etc._n be_v idolater_n because_o they_o use_v the_o public_a worship_n of_o these_o time_n such_o a_o consequence_n be_v most_o impertinent_a and_o no_o less_o foolish_a and_o absurd_a than_o if_o i_o shall_v infer_v from_o paul_n expostulate_v with_o the_o galatian_n for_o their_o return_v to_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n that_o he_o therefore_o condemn_v moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n as_o foolish_a and_o ignorant_a because_o they_o use_v those_o thing_n the_o forward_a man_n not_o hee_v the_o different_a dispensation_n of_o time_n run_v into_o this_o impertinency_n though_o a_o spiritual_a worship_n may_v have_v be_v and_o no_o doubt_n be_v practise_v by_o many_o under_o the_o law_n in_o great_a simplicity_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v no_o superstition_n to_o use_v all_o those_o ceremony_n that_o they_o use_v which_o be_v by_o god_n dispense_v to_o the_o jew_n not_o as_o be_v essential_a to_o true_a worship_n or_o necessary_a as_o of_o themselves_o for_o transmit_v and_o entertain_v a_o holy_a fellowship_n betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o people_n but_o in_o condescension_n to_o they_o who_o be_v inclinable_a to_o idolatty_n albeit_o then_o in_o this_o as_o in_o most_o other_o thing_n the_o substance_n be_v enjoy_v under_o the_o law_n by_o such_o as_o be_v spiritual_a indeed_o yet_o be_v it_o veil_v and_o surround_v with_o many_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v no_o way_n lawful_a for_o we_o to_o use_v now_o under_o the_o gospel_n §_o iii_o second_o albeit_o i_o say_v that_o this_o worship_n be_v neither_o limit_v to_o time_n place_n nor_o person_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o i_o intend_v the_o put_v away_o of_o all_o set_a time_n and_o place_n to_o worship_n god_n forbid_v i_o shall_v think_v of_o such_o a_o opinion_n nay_o we_o be_v none_o of_o those_o that_o forsake_v the_o assembly_n of_o ourselves_o together_o but_o have_v even_o certain_a time_n and_o place_n in_o which_o we_o careful_o meet_v together_o nor_o can_v we_o be_v drive_v thereform_v by_o the_o threat_n and_o persecution_n of_o man_n to_o wait_v upon_o god_n and_o worship_v he_o to_o meet_v together_o we_o think_v necessary_a for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n because_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o this_o outward_a tabernacle_n there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o the_o entertain_v of_o a_o joint_n and_o visible_a fellowship_n and_o bear_v of_o a_o outward_a testimony_n for_o god_n and_o see_v of_o the_o face_n of_o one_o another_o that_o we_o concur_v with_o our_o person_n as_o well_o as_o spirit_n to_o be_v accompany_v with_o that_o inward_a love_n and_o unity_n of_o spirit_n do_v great_o tend_v to_o encourage_v and_o refresh_v the_o saint_n but_o the_o limitation_n we_o condemn_v be_v that_o whereas_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o immediate_a actor_n moreover_o persuader_n and_o influencer_n of_o man_n in_o the_o particular_a act_n of_o worship_n when_o the_o saint_n be_v meet_v together_o this_o spirit_n be_v limit_v in_o its_o operation_n by_o set_v up_o a_o particular_a man_n or_o man_n to_o preach_v and_o pray_v in_o man_n will_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v exclude_v from_o so_o much_o as_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v to_o wait_v for_o god_n spirit_n to_o move_v they_o in_o such_o thing_n and_o so_o they_o neglect_v that_o which_o shall_v quicken_v they_o in_o themselves_o and_o not_o wait_v to_o feel_v the_o pure_a breathe_n of_o god_n spirit_n so_o as_o to_o obey_v they_o be_v lead_v mere_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o preacher_n and_o hear_v what_o he_o will_v say_v second_o in_o that_o these_o peculiar_a man_n come_v not_o hither_o to_o meet_v with_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o inward_a motion_n and_o operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o so_o pray_v as_o they_o feel_v the_o spirit_n to_o breath_n through_o they_o and_o in_o they_o and_o to_o preach_v as_o they_o find_v themselves_o act_v and_o move_v by_o god_n spirit_n and_o as_o he_o give_v utterance_n so_o as_o to_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o season_n to_o refresh_v weary_a soul_n and_o as_o the_o present_a condition_n and_o state_n of_o the_o people_n heart_n require_v
natural_a will_n in_o its_o own_o proper_a motion_n crucify_a that_o god_n may_v both_o move_v in_o the_o act_n and_o in_o the_o will_n the_o lord_n chief_o regard_v this_o profound_a subjection_n and_o self-denial_n for_o some_o man_n please_v themselves_o as_o much_o and_o gratify_v their_o own_o sinful_a will_n and_o humour_n in_o high_a and_o curious_a speculation_n of_o religion_n affect_v a_o name_n and_o reputation_n that_o way_n or_o because_o those_o thing_n by_o custom_n or_o otherways_o be_v become_v pleasant_a and_o habitual_a to_o they_o though_o not_o a_o whit_n more_o regenerate_v or_o inward_o sanctify_v in_o their_o spirit_n as_o other_o gratify_v their_o lust_n in_o action_n of_o sensuality_n and_o therefore_o both_o be_v alike_o hurtful_a to_o man_n and_o sinful_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o mere_a fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o man_n natural_a and_o unrenewed_a will_n and_o spirit_n yea_o shall_v one_o as_o many_o no_o doubt_n do_v from_o a_o sense_n of_o sin_n and_o fear_v of_o punishment_n seek_v to_o terrify_v themselves_o from_o sin_n by_o multiply_a thought_n of_o death_n hell_n and_o judgement_n and_o by_o present_v to_o their_o imagination_n the_o happiness_n and_o joy_n of_o heaven_n and_o also_o by_o multiply_a prayer_n and_o other_o religious_a performance_n as_o these_o thing_n can_v never_o deliver_v he_o from_o one_o iniquity_n without_o the_o secret_a and_o inward_a power_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o grace_n so_o will_v they_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o the_o figleaf_n wherewith_o adam_n think_v to_o cover_v his_o nakedness_n and_o see_v it_o be_v only_o the_o product_n of_o man_n own_o natural_a will_n proceed_v from_o a_o self-love_n and_o seek_v to_o save_v himself_o and_o not_o arise_v pure_o from_o that_o divine_a seed_n of_o righteousness_n which_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o all_o for_o grace_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v reject_v of_o god_n and_o no_o way_n acceptable_a unto_o he_o since_o the_o natural_a man_n as_o natural_a while_o he_o stand_v in_o that_o state_n be_v with_o all_o his_o art_n part_n and_o act_n reprobate_v by_o he_o this_o great_a duty_n then_o of_o wait_v upon_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v exercise_v in_o man_n deny_v self_n both_o inward_o and_o outward_o in_o a_o still_a and_o mere_a dependence_n upon_o god_n in_o abstract_v from_o all_o the_o work_n imagination_n and_o speculation_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n that_o be_v empty_v as_o it_o be_v of_o himself_o and_o so_o thorough_o crucify_v to_o the_o natural_a product_n thereof_o he_o may_v be_v fit_a to_o receive_v the_o lord_n who_o will_v have_v no_o copartner_n nor_o corrival_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o power_n and_o man_n be_v thus_o state_v the_o little_a seed_n of_o righteousness_n which_o god_n have_v plant_v in_o his_o soul_n and_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o he_o even_o the_o measure_n of_o grace_n and_o life_n which_o be_v burden_a and_o crucify_a by_o man_n natural_a thought_n and_o imagination_n receive_v a_o place_n to_o arise_v and_o become_v a_o holy_a birth_n and_o geniture_n in_o man_n and_o be_v that_o divine_a air_n in_o and_o by_o which_o man_n soul_n and_o spirit_n come_v to_o be_v leaven_v and_o by_o wait_v therein_o he_o come_v to_o be_v accept_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o stand_v in_o his_o presence_n hear_v his_o voice_n and_o observe_v the_o motion_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o so_o man_n place_n be_v to_o wait_v in_o this_o and_o as_o hereby_o there_o be_v any_o object_n present_v to_o his_o mind_n concern_v god_n or_o thing_n relate_v to_o religion_n his_o soul_n may_v be_v exercise_v in_o they_o without_o hurt_n and_o to_o the_o great_a profit_n both_o of_o himself_o and_o other_o because_o those_o thing_n have_v their_o rise_n not_o from_o his_o own_o will_n but_o from_o god_n spirit_n and_o therefore_o as_o in_o the_o arising_n and_o move_n of_o this_o his_o mind_n be_v still_o to_o be_v exercise_v in_o think_v and_o meditate_v so_o also_o in_o the_o more_o obvious_a act_n of_o preach_v and_o pray_v and_o so_o it_o may_v hence_o appear_v we_o be_v not_o against_o meditation_n as_o some_o have_v seek_v false_o to_o infer_v from_o our_o doctrine_n but_o we_o be_v against_o the_o thought_n and_o imagination_n of_o the_o natural_a man_n in_o his_o own_o will_n from_o which_o all_o error_n and_o heresy_n concern_v the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v proceed_v but_o if_o it_o please_v god_n at_o any_o time_n when_o one_o or_o more_o be_v wait_v upon_o he_o not_o to_o present_v such_o object_n as_o give_v they_o occasion_n to_o exercise_v their_o mind_n in_o thought_n and_o imagination_n but_o pure_o to_o keep_v they_o in_o this_o holy_a dependence_n and_o as_o they_o persist_v therein_o to_o cause_v his_o secret_a refreshment_n and_o the_o pure_a income_n of_o his_o holy_a life_n to_o flow_v in_o upon_o they_o than_o they_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o be_v content_a because_o by_o this_o as_o we_o know_v by_o good_a and_o bless_a experience_n the_o soul_n be_v more_o strengthen_v renew_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o arm_v against_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n than_o any_o way_n else_o this_o be_v a_o foretaste_a of_o that_o real_a and_o sensible_a enjoyment_n of_o god_n which_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n daily_o possess_v which_o god_n frequent_o afford_v to_o his_o child_n here_o for_o their_o comfort_n and_o encouragement_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v together_o to_o wait_v upon_o he_o §_o xi_o for_o there_o be_v two_o contrary_a power_n or_o spirit_n to_o wit_n the_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n in_o which_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n bear_v rule_v and_o over_o as_o many_o as_o be_v act_v by_o it_o and_o work_n from_o it_o and_o the_o power_n or_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o which_o god_n work_v and_o bear_v rule_v and_o over_o as_o many_o as_o act_v in_o and_o from_o it_o so_o whatever_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o a_o man_n think_v of_o or_o act_v in_o however_o spiritual_a or_o religious_a as_o to_o the_o notion_n or_o form_n of_o they_o so_o long_o as_o he_o act_v and_o move_v in_o the_o natural_a and_o corrupt_a spirit_n and_o will_v and_o not_o from_o in_o and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n he_o sin_v in_o all_o and_o be_v not_o accept_v of_o god_n for_o hence_o both_o the_o plough_v and_o pray_v of_o the_o wicked_a be_v sin_n as_o also_o whatever_o a_o man_n act_n in_o and_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n have_v his_o understanding_n and_o will_n influence_v and_o move_v by_o it_o whether_o it_o be_v action_n religious_a civil_a or_o even_o natural_a he_o be_v accept_v in_o so_o do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o be_v bless_v in_o they_o from_o what_o be_v say_v it_o do_v appear_v how_o frivolous_a and_o impertinent_a their_o objection_n be_v that_o say_v they_o wait_v upon_o god_n in_o pray_v and_o preach_v since_o wait_v do_v of_o itself_o imply_v a_o passive_a dependence_n rather_o than_o a_o act_n and_o since_o it_o be_v and_o shall_v yet_o be_v more_o show_v that_o preach_v and_o pray_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o offend_n of_o god_n not_o a_o wait_a upon_o he_o and_o that_o pray_v and_o preach_v by_o the_o spirit_n presuppose_v necessary_o a_o silent_a wait_a for_o to_o feel_v the_o motion_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o lead_v thereunto_o and_o last_o that_o in_o several_a of_o these_o place_n where_o pray_v be_v command_v as_o matth._n 26.41_o mark_v 13.33_o luke_n 21.36_o 1_o pet._n 4.7_o watch_v be_v special_o prefix_v as_o a_o previous_a preparation_n thereunto_o so_o that_o we_o do_v well_o and_o certain_o conclude_v that_o since_o wait_v and_o watch_v be_v so_o particular_o command_v and_o recommend_v and_o this_o can_v be_v true_o perform_v but_o in_o this_o inward_a silence_n of_o the_o mind_n from_o man_n own_o thought_n and_o imagination_n this_o silence_n be_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v a_o special_a and_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n worship_n §_o xii_o but_o second_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o silent_a wait_v upon_o god_n do_v appear_v in_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o enemy_n viz._n the_o devil_n to_o counterfeit_v it_o so_o as_o for_o any_o soul_n to_o be_v deceive_v or_o delude_v by_o he_o in_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o now_o in_o all_o other_o matter_n he_o may_v mix_v himself_o in_o with_o the_o natural_a mind_n of_o man_n and_o so_o by_o transform_v himself_o he_o may_v deceive_v the_o soul_n by_o busy_v it_o about_o thing_n perhaps_o innocent_a in_o themselves_o while_o yet_o he_o keep_v they_o from_o behold_v the_o pure_a light_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o know_v distinct_o his_o duty_n and_o do_v of_o it_o for_o
will_v then_o follow_v that_o all_o those_o that_o have_v this_o baptism_n be_v save_v by_o it_o now_o this_o consequence_n will_v be_v false_a if_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o water-baptism_n because_o many_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o all_o be_v baptize_v with_o water_n that_o be_v not_o save_v but_o this_o consequence_n hold_v most_o true_a if_o it_o be_v understand_v as_o we_o do_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n since_o none_o can_v have_v this_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o abide_v in_o it_o not_o be_v save_v by_o it_o five_o that_o the_o one_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o wash_n with_o water_n as_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o one_o baptism_n so_o it_o be_v also_o manifest_a from_o the_o necessary_a fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o which_o be_v three-time_n particular_o express_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n as_o first_o rom._n 6.3_o 4._o where_o he_o say_v that_o so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o be_v baptize_v into_o jesus_n christ_n be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o they_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n second_o to_o the_o gal._n 3.27_o he_o say_v positive_o for_o as_o many_o of_o you_o as_o have_v be_v baptize_v unto_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ._n and_o three_o to_o the_o col._n 2.12_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o in_o baptism_n and_o rise_v with_o he_o through_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v here_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v general_o without_o any_o exclusive_a term_n but_o comprehensive_a of_o all_o he_o say_v not_o some_o of_o you_o that_o be_v baptze_v into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n but_o as_o many_o of_o you_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v every_o one_o of_o you_o that_o have_v be_v baptise_a into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ._n whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o water-baptism_n but_o of_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o else_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o whosoever_o have_v be_v baptise_a with_o water_n baptism_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n and_o be_v rise_v with_o he_o which_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v most_o absurd_a now_o suppose_v all_o the_o visible_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n galatia_n and_o coloss_n have_v be_v outward_o baptise_a with_o water_n i_o do_v not_o say_v they_o be_v but_o our_o adversary_n will_v not_o only_o ready_o grant_v it_o but_o also_o contend_v for_o it_o suppose_v i_o say_v the_o case_n so_o they_o will_v not_o say_v they_o have_v all_o put_v on_o christ_n since_o divers_a expression_n in_o these_o epistle_n to_o they_o show_v the_o contrary_a so_o that_o the_o apostle_n can_v mean_v baptism_n with_o water_n and_o yet_o he_o mean_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n i._n e._n of_o the_o spirit_n can_v be_v deny_v or_o that_o the_o baptism_n wherewith_o thes_n be_v baptise_a of_o who_o the_o apostle_n here_o testify_v that_o they_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n be_v the_o one_o baptism_n i_o think_v none_o will_v call_v in_o question_n now_o admit_v as_o our_o adversary_n contend_v that_o many_o in_o these_o church_n who_o have_v be_v baptise_a with_o water_n have_v not_o put_v on_o christ_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o notwithstanding_o that_o water-baptism_n they_o be_v not_o baptise_a into_o christ_n or_o with_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n see_v as_o many_o of_o they_o as_o be_v baptise_a into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n &_o e._n from_o all_o which_o i_o thus_o argue_v arg._n 1._o if_o the_o baptism_n with_o water_n be_v the_o one_o baptism_n i._n e._n the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n as_o many_o as_o be_v baptise_a with_o water_n will_v have_v put_v on_o christ._n but_o the_o last_o be_v false_a therefore_o also_o the_o first_o and_o again_o arg._n 2._o since_o as_o many_o as_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n i._n e._n with_o the_o one_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n than_o water-baptism_n be_v not_o the_o one_o baptism_n viz._n the_o baptism_n of_o christ._n but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a therefore_o also_o the_o last_o §_o v._n three_o since_o john_n baptism_n be_v a_o figure_n and_o see_v the_o figure_n give_v way_n to_o the_o substance_n albeit_o the_o thing_n figure_v remain_v to_o wit_n the_o one_o baptism_n of_o christ_n yet_o the_o other_o cease_v which_o be_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n that_o john_n baptism_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n baptism_n i_o judge_v will_v not_o ready_o be_v deny_v but_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v it_o can_v easy_o be_v prove_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o john_n baptism_n be_v a_o be_v baptize_v with_o water_n but_o christ_n be_v a_o baptise_v with_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o john_n baptism_n must_v have_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n but_o further_a that_o water-baptism_n be_v john_n baptism_n will_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o water-baptism_n be_v not_o christ_n baptism_n be_v already_o prove_v from_o which_o do_v arise_v the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o proposition_n thus_o there_o be_v no_o baptism_n to_o continue_v now_o but_o the_o one_o baptism_n of_o christ_n arg._n therefore_o water-baptism_n be_v not_o to_o continue_v now_o because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ._n that_o john_n baptism_n be_v cease_v many_o of_o out_o adversary_n confess_v but_o if_o any_o shall_v allege_v it_o otherwise_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o john_n not_o only_o as_o be_v insinuate_v there_o where_o he_o contradistinguisheth_a his_o baptism_n from_o that_o of_o christ_n but_o particular_o where_o he_o say_v john_n 3.30_o he_o christ_n must_v increase_v but_o i_o john_n must_v decrease_v from_o whence_o it_o clear_o follow_v that_o the_o increase_n or_o take_v place_n of_o christ_n baptism_n be_v the_o decrease_a or_o abolish_n of_o john_n baptism_n so_o that_o if_o water_n baptism_n be_v a_o particular_a part_n of_o john_n ministry_n and_o be_v no_o part_n of_o christ_n baptism_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o continue_v second_o arg._n if_o water-baptism_n have_v be_v to_o continue_v a_o perpetual_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n he_o will_v either_o have_v practise_v it_o himself_o or_o command_v his_o apostle_n so_o to_o do_v but_o that_o he_o practise_v it_o not_o the_o scripture_n plain_o affirm_v john_n 4.2_o and_o that_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o baptize_v with_o water_n i_o can_v never_o yet_o read_v as_o for_o what_o be_v allege_v that_o matth._n 28.19_o etc._n etc._n where_o he_o bid_v they_o baptize_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o water_n baptism_n that_o be_v but_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o the_o ground_n for_o that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o examine_v therefore_o to_o baptize_v with_o water_n be_v no_o perpetual_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n this_o have_v have_v the_o more_o weight_n with_o i_o because_o i_o find_v not_o any_o stand_a ordinance_n or_o appointment_n of_o christ_n necessary_a to_o christian_n for_o which_o we_o have_v not_o either_o christ_n own_o practice_n or_o command_v as_o to_o obey_v all_o the_o commandment_n which_o comprehend_v both_o our_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n etc._n etc._n and_o where_o the_o gospel_n require_v more_o than_o the_o law_n which_o be_v abundant_o signify_v in_o the_o 5._o and_o 6._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n and_o elsewhere_o beside_o as_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o worship_n he_o exhort_v we_o to_o meet_v promise_v his_o presence_n command_v to_o pray_v prithee_o watch_n etc._n etc._n and_o give_v precept_n concern_v some_o temporary_a thing_n as_o the_o wash_n of_o one_o another_o foot_n the_o break_n of_o bread_n hereafter_o to_o be_v discuss_v only_o for_o this_o one_o thing_n of_o baptise_v with_o water_n though_o so_o earnest_o contend_v for_o we_o find_v not_o any_o precept_n of_o christ._n §_o vi_o but_o to_o make_v water-baptism_n a_o necessary_a institution_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v pure_a and_o spiritual_a and_o not_o carnal_a and_o and_o ceremonial_a be_v to_o derogate_v from_o the_o new_a covenant_n dispensation_n and_o set_v up_o the_o legal_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o which_o this_o of_o baptism_n or_o wash_v with_o water_n be_v one_o as_o appear_v from_o heb._n 9.10_o where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v thereof_o say_v that_o it_o stand_v only_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o divers_a baptism_n and_o carnal_a ordinance_n impose_v until_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n if_o then_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n or_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o shadow_n be_v come_v than_o such_o baptism_n and_o
pelagian_n for_o say_v that_o infant_n die_v unbaptise_v may_v be_v save_v and_o the_o manichee_n be_v condemn_v for_o deny_v that_o grace_n be_v universal_o give_v by_o baptism_n and_o julian_n the_o pelagian_a by_o augustin_n for_o deny_v exorcism_n and_o insufflation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o baptism_n all_o which_o thing_n protestant_n deny_v also_o so_o that_o protestant_n do_v but_o foolish_o to_o upbraid_v we_o as_o if_o we_o can_v not_o show_v any_o among_o the_o ancient_n that_o deny_v water-baptism_n see_v they_o can_v show_v any_o who_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o to_o have_v be_v heretical_a in_o several_a thing_n to_o have_v use_v it_o nor_o yet_o who_o use_v it_o do_v not_o use_v also_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o other_o thing_n with_o it_o which_o they_o deny_v there_o be_v some_o nevertheless_o in_o the_o dark_a time_n of_o popery_n who_o testify_v against_o water-baptism_n for_o one_o alanus_n pag._n 103_o 104_o 107._o speak_v of_o some_o in_o his_o time_n that_o be_v burn_v for_o the_o deny_v of_o it_o for_o they_o say_v that_o baptism_n have_v no_o efficacy_n either_o in_o child_n or_o adult_a person_n and_o therefore_o man_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o take_v baptism_n particular_o ten_o canonic_n so_o call_v be_v burn_v for_o that_o crime_n by_o the_o order_n of_o king_n robert_n of_o france_n and_o p._n pithaeus_n tell_v in_o his_o fragment_n of_o the_o history_n of_o guienne_n which_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o one_o johannes_n floracensis_n a_o monk_n who_o be_v famous_a at_o that_o time_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o oliva_n abbot_n of_o the_o ausonian_n church_n i_o will_v say_v he_o give_v you_o to_o understand_v concern_v the_o heresy_n that_o be_v in_o the_o city_n of_o orleans_n on_o childe●-mass-day_n foy_fw-fr it_o be_v true_a if_o you_o have_v hear_v any_o thing_n that_o king_n robert_n cause_v to_o be_v burn_v alive_a nigh_o fourteen_o of_o that_o city_n of_o the_o chief_a of_o their_o clergy_n and_o the_o more_o noble_a of_o their_o laic_n who_o be_v hateful_a to_o god_n and_o abominable_a to_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o they_o do_v stiff_o deny_v the_o grace_n of_o holy_a baptism_n and_o also_o the_o consecration_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o time_n of_o this_o deed_n be_v note_v in_o these_o word_n by_o papir_n masson_n in_o his_o annal_n of_o france_n lib._n 3._o in_o hugh_n and_o robert_n actum_fw-la aureliae_fw-la publicae_fw-la anno_fw-la incarnationis_fw-la domini_fw-la 1022_o regni_fw-la roberti_n regis_fw-la 28._o indictione_n 5._o quando_fw-la stephanus_n haeresiarcha_fw-la &_o complice_n ejus_fw-la damnati_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o exusti_fw-la aureliae_fw-la now_o for_o their_o call_v they_o heretic_n and_o manichee_n we_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o accuser_n which_o will_v no_o more_o invalidate_v their_o testimony_n for_o this_o truth_n against_o the_o use_n of_o water-baptism_n or_o give_v more_o ground_n to_o charge_v we_o as_o be_v one_o with_o manichee_n than_o because_o some_o call_v by_o they_o manichee_n do_v agree_v with_o protestant_n in_o some_o thing_n that_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v manichee_n or_o heretic_n which_o protestant_n can_v no_o way_n shun_v for_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o in_o what_o they_o do_v they_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n testify_v of_o by_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o that_o the_o controversy_n be_v bring_v back_o again_o to_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o which_o i_o suppose_v i_o have_v former_o discuss_v it_o as_o for_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o thesis_n deny_v the_o use_n of_o infant_n baptism_n it_o necessary_o follow_v from_o what_o be_v above_o say_v for_o if_o water-baptism_n be_v cease_v then_o sure_o baptise_v of_o infant_n be_v not_o warrantable_a but_o those_o that_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o oppose_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n will_v have_v more_o to_o do_v as_o to_o this_o latter_a part_n for_o after_o they_o have_v do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o prove_v water-baptism_n it_o remain_v for_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o infant_n ought_v to_o be_v baptize_v for_o he_o that_o prove_v water-baptism_n cease_v prove_v that_o infant_n baptism_n be_v vain_a but_o he_o that_o shall_v prove_v that_o water-baptism_n continue_v have_v not_o thence_o prove_v that_o infant_n baptism_n be_v necessary_a that_o need_v something_o further_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a subterfuge_n of_o nic._n arnoldus_fw-la against_o this_o to_o say_v that_o the_o deny_v of_o infant-baptism_n belong_v to_o the_o gangrene_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n without_o add_v any_o further_a probation_n the_o thirteen_o proposition_n concern_v the_o communion_n or_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v inward_a and_o spiritual_a which_o be_v the_o participation_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n by_o which_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v daily_o nourish_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o in_o who_o christ_n dwell_v of_o which_o thing_n the_o break_n of_o bread_n by_o christ_n with_o his_o disciple_n be_v a_o figure_n which_o they_o even_o use_v in_o the_o church_n for_o a_o time_n who_o have_v receive_v the_o substance_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o weak_a even_o as_o abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v and_o from_o blood_n the_o wash_n of_o one_o another_o foot_n and_o the_o anoint_v of_o the_o sick_a with_o oil_n all_o which_o be_v command_v with_o no_o less_o authority_n and_o solemnity_n than_o the_o former_a yet_o see_v they_o be_v but_o the_o shadow_n of_o better_a thing_n they_o cease_v in_o such_o as_o have_v obtain_v the_o substance_n §_o i._o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o mystery_n hide_v from_o all_o natural_a man_n in_o their_o first_o fall_v and_o degenerate_a state_n which_o they_o can_v understand_v reach_v to_o nor_o comprehend_v as_o they_o there_o abide_v neither_o as_o they_o there_o be_v can_v they_o be_v partaker_n of_o it_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o able_a to_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o christian_a world_n so_o call_v for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v be_v still_o labour_v work_a conceive_a and_o imagine_v in_o their_o own_o natural_a and_o unrenewed_a understanding_n about_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n therefore_o have_v this_o mystery_n much_o be_v hide_v and_o seal_v up_o from_o they_o while_o they_o have_v be_v contend_v quarrel_a and_o fight_v one_o with_o another_o about_o the_o mere_a shadow_n outside_n and_o form_n but_o stranger_n to_o the_o substance_n life_n and_o virtue_n §_o ii_o the_o body_n then_o of_o christ_n which_o believer_n partake_v of_o be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o carnal_a and_o his_o blood_n which_o they_o drink_v of_o be_v pure_a and_o heavenly_a and_o not_o humane_a or_o elementary_a as_o augustin_n also_o affirm_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v eat_v in_o his_o tractat._n psal._n 98._o except_o a_o man_n eat_v my_o flesh_n he_o have_v not_o in_o he_o life_n eternal_a and_o he_o say_v the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n understand_v spiritual_o what_o i_o have_v speak_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v of_o this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v and_o drink_v this_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v spill_v that_o crucify_v i_o i_o be_o the_o live_a bread_n who_o have_v descend_v from_o heaven_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o bread_n who_o descend_v from_o heaven_n exhort_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v in_o he_o etc._n etc._n quest·_n if_o it_o be_v ask_v then_o what_o that_o body_n what_o that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v i_o answer_v it_o be_v that_o heavenly_a seed_n that_o divine_a spiritual_n celestial_a substance_n answ._n of_o which_o we_o speak_v before_o in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o proposition_n this_o be_v that_o vehiculum_fw-la dei_fw-la or_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n whereby_o and_o wherethrough_a he_o communicate_v life_n to_o man_n and_o salvation_n to_o as_o many_o as_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o receive_v he_o and_o whereby_o also_o man_n come_v to_o have_v fellowship_n and_o communion_n with_o god_n this_o be_v prove_v from_o the_o 6_o of_o john_n from_o verse_n 32_o to_o the_o end_n where_o christ_n speak_v more_o at_o large_a of_o this_o matter_n than_o in_o any_o other_o place_n and_o indeed_o this_o evangelist_n and_o belove_a disciple_n who_o lie_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o our_o lord_n give_v we_o a_o more_o full_a account_n of_o the_o spiritual_a say_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o though_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o ceremony_n use_v by_o christ_n of_o break_v bread_n with_o his_o disciple_n neither_o in_o his_o evangelical_n account_n of_o christ_n life_n and_o suffering_n nor_o in_o his_o epistle_n yet_o he_o be_v more_o large_a in_o this_o account_n of_o the_o
consequence_n have_v ensue_v as_o make_v the_o christian_a religion_n odious_a and_o hateful_a to_o jew_n turk_n and_o heathen_n the_o professor_n of_o christianity_n do_v chief_o divide_v in_o this_o matter_n into_o three_o opinion_n the_o first_o be_v of_o those_o that_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o that_o same_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o crucify_v by_o the_o jew_n so_o that_o after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n as_o they_o call_v they_o it_o be_v no_o more_o bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n the_o second_o be_v of_o such_o as_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n remain_v but_o that_o also_o that_o body_n be_v in_o and_o with_o and_o under_o the_o bread_n so_o that_o both_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o also_o the_o three_o be_v of_o those_o that_o deny_v both_o these_o do_v affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o there_o corporal_o or_o substantial_o but_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v real_o and_o sacramental_o receive_v by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o use_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o how_o or_o what_o way_n it_o be_v there_o they_o know_v not_o nor_o can_v they_o tell_v only_o we_o must_v believe_v it_o be_v there_o yet_o so_o that_o it_o be_v only_o proper_o in_o heaven_n it_o be_v not_o my_o design_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o refutation_n of_o these_o several_a opinion_n for_o each_o of_o their_o author_n and_o assertor_n have_v sufficient_o refute_v one_o another_o and_o be_v all_o of_o they_o no_o less_o strong_a both_o from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n in_o refute_v each_o their_o contrary_a party_n opinion_n than_o they_o be_v weak_a in_o establish_v their_o own_o for_o i_o often_o bave_v serious_o observe_v in_o read_v their_o respective_a write_n and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v have_v other_o that_o all_o of_o they_o do_v notable_o in_o so_o far_o as_o they_o refute_v the_o contrary_n opinion_n but_o that_o they_o be_v mighty_o pain_v when_o they_o come_v to_o confirm_v and_o plead_v for_o their_o own_o hence_o i_o necessary_o to_o conclude_v that_o none_o of_o they_o have_v attain_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n let_v we_o see_v if_o calvin_n 17._o after_o he_o have_v refute_v the_o two_o former_a opinion_n be_v more_o successful_a in_o what_o he_o affirm_v and_o assert_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o opinion_n who_o after_o he_o have_v much_o labour_v in_o overturning_a and_o refute_v the_o two_o former_a opinion_n plain_o confess_v that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o affirm_v instead_o of_o they_o for_o after_o he_o have_v speak_v much_o and_o at_o last_o conclude_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o and_o that_o the_o saint_n must_v needs_o partake_v thereof_o at_o last_o he_o land_n in_o these_o word_n sect_n 32._o but_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v i_o how_o it_o be_v i_o shall_v not_o he_o ashamed_a to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o secret_a too_o high_a for_o i_o to_o comprehend_v in_o my_o spirit_n or_o explain_v in_o word_n here_o he_o deal_v very_o ingenuous_o and_o yet_o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o such_o a_o man_n will_v have_v be_v bring_v to_o this_o strait_a in_o the_o confirm_v of_o his_o opinion_n consider_v but_o a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o same_o chap._n sect_n 15._o he_o accuse_v the_o schoolman_n among_o the_o papist_n and_o i_o confess_v true_o in_o that_o they_o neither_o understand_v nor_o explain_v to_o other_o how_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o short_o after_o he_o confess_v himself_o he_o can_v do_v if_o then_o the_o school_n man_n among_o the_o papist_n do_v neither_o understand_v nor_o yet_o can_v explain_v to_o other_o their_o doctrine_n in_o this_o matter_n nor_o calvin_n can_v comprehend_v it_o in_o his_o spirit_n which_o i_o judge_v be_v as_o much_o as_o not_o to_o understand_v it_o nor_o express_v it_o in_o word_n and_o then_o sure_o he_o can_v explain_v it_o to_o other_o than_o no_o certainty_n be_v to_o be_v have_v from_o either_o of_o they_o there_o have_v be_v great_a endeavour_n use_v for_o reconcilement_n in_o this_o matter_n both_o betwixt_o papist_n and_o lutheran_n lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n yea_o and_o calvinist_n and_o papist_n but_o all_o to_o no_o purpose_n and_o many_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o expression_n draw_v up_o to_o which_o all_o may_v yield_v which_o in_o the_o end_n prove_v in_o vain_a see_v every_o one_o understand_v they_o and_o interpret_v they_o their_o own_o way_n and_o so_o they_o do_v thereby_o but_o equivocate_a and_o deceive_v one_o another_o the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o contention_n be_v because_o they_o all_o want_v a_o clear_a understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o be_v dote_v about_o the_o shadow_n and_o the_o external_o for_o both_o the_o ground_n and_o matter_n of_o their_o contest_v lie_v in_o thing_n intrinsic_a from_o and_o unnecessary_a to_o the_o main_a matter_n and_o this_o have_v be_v often_o the_o policy_n of_o satan_n to_o busy_a people_n and_o amuse_v they_o with_o outward_a sign_n shadow_n and_o form_n make_v they_o contend_v about_o that_o while_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o substance_n be_v neglect_v yea_o and_o in_o contend_v for_o these_o shadow_n he_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o malice_n heat_n revenge_n and_o other_o vice_n by_o which_o he_o establish_v his_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n among_o they_o and_o ruin_v the_o life_n of_o christianity_n for_o there_o have_v be_v more_o animosity_n and_o heat_n about_o this_o one_o particular_a and_o more_o blood_n shed_v and_o contention_n than_o about_o any_o other_o and_o sure_o they_o be_v little_o acquaint_v with_o the_o state_n of_o protestant_n affair_n who_o know_v not_o that_o their_o contention_n about_o this_o have_v be_v more_o hurtful_a to_o the_o reformation_n than_o all_o the_o opposition_n they_o meet_v with_o from_o their_o common_a adversary_n now_o all_o those_o uncertain_a and_o absurd_a opinion_n and_o the_o contention_n therefrom_o arise_v have_v proceed_v from_o their_o all_o agree_v in_o two_o general_a error_n concern_v this_o thing_n which_o be_v deny_v and_o recee_v from_o as_o they_o be_v by_o we_o there_o will_v be_v a_o easy_a way_n make_v for_o reconciliation_n and_o we_o shall_v all_o meet_v in_o the_o one_o spiritual_a and_o true_a understanding_n of_o this_o mystery_n and_o as_o the_o contention_n so_o will_v also_o the_o absurdity_n which_o follow_v from_o all_o the_o three_o forementioned_a opinion_n cease_v and_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n the_o first_o of_o these_o error_n be_v in_o make_v the_o communion_n or_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o relate_v to_o that_o outward_a body_n vessel_n or_o temple_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o walk_v and_o suffer_v in_o judea_n whereas_o it_o shall_v relate_v to_o the_o spiritual_a body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n even_o that_o heavenly_a and_o celestial_a light_n and_o life_n which_o be_v the_o food_n and_o nourishment_n of_o the_o regenerate_a in_o all_o age_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o second_o error_n be_v in_o tie_v this_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o that_o ceremony_n use_v by_o he_o with_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o it_o have_v only_o a_o relation_n thereto_o or_o be_v only_o enjoy_v in_o the_o use_n of_o that_o ceremony_n which_o it_o neither_o have_v nor_o be_v for_o this_o be_v that_o bread_n which_o christ_n in_o his_o prayer_n teach_v to_o call_v for_o term_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n the_o supersubstantial_a bread_n as_o the_o greek_a have_v it_o and_o which_o the_o soul_n partake_v of_o without_o any_o relation_n or_o necessary_a respect_n to_o this_o ceremony_n as_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o prove_v more_o at_o length_n these_o two_o error_n be_v thus_o lay_v aside_o and_o the_o contention_n arise_v therefrom_o bury_v all_o be_v agree_v in_o the_o main_a position_n viz._n first_o that_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o nourish_a of_o the_o soul_n second_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o believer_n do_v real_o and_o true_o partake_v and_o feed_v upon_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o while_o man_n be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o spirituality_n of_o this_o mystery_n go_v in_o their_o own_o will_n and_o according_a to_o their_o own_o invention_n to_o strain_v and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n for_o to_o tie_v this_o spiritual_a communion_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o outward_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o such_o like_a
than_o a_o cut_n off_o from_o the_o church_n be_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v show_v beza_n upon_o the_o place_n sai_z we_o can_v understand_v that_o otherwise_o than_o of_o excommunication_n such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a and_o indeed_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o suppose_v it_o otherwise_o for_o paul_n will_v not_o have_v these_o cut_v off_o otherwise_o than_o he_o do_v hymenaeus_n and_o philetus_n who_o be_v blasphemer_n which_o be_v by_o give_v they_o over_o to_o satan_n not_o by_o cut_v off_o their_o head_n the_o same_o way_n may_v be_v answer_v that_o other_o argument_n draw_v from_o rev._n 2.20_o where_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n be_v reprove_v for_o suffer_v the_o woman_n jezebel_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n understand_v than_o that_o they_o do_v not_o excommunicate_v she_o or_o cut_v she_o off_o by_o a_o church_n censure_n for_o as_o to_o corporal_a punishment_n it_o be_v know_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o christian_n have_v not_o power_n to_o punish_v heretic_n so_o if_o they_o have_v have_v a_o mind_n to_o it_o four_o they_o allege_v obj._n that_o heresy_n be_v number_v among_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5.20_o ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o magistrate_n have_v power_n to_o punish_v all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n answ._n be_v deny_v and_o not_o yet_o prove_v every_o evil_n be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o every_o evil_n come_v not_o under_o the_o magistrate_n cognisance_n be_v not_o hypocrisy_n a_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o our_o adversary_n confess_v the_o magistrate_n ought_v not_o to_o punish_v yea_o be_v not_o hatred_n and_o envy_n there_o mention_v as_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o yet_o the_o magistrate_n can_v punish_v they_o as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o until_o they_o exert_v themselves_o in_o other_o act_n which_o come_v under_o his_o power_n but_o so_o long_o as_o heresy_n do_v not_o exert_v itself_o in_o any_o act_n destructive_a to_o humane_a society_n or_o such_o like_a thing_n but_o be_v keep_v within_o the_o sphere_n of_o those_o duty_n of_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n which_o stand_v betwixt_o a_o man_n and_o god_n they_o no_o way_n come_v under_o a_o magistrate_n power_n §_o iu._n but_o second_o this_o force_n of_o man_n conscience_n be_v contrary_a to_o sound_v reason_n and_o to_o the_o very_a law_n of_o nature_n for_o man_n understanding_n can_v be_v force_v by_o all_o the_o bodily_a suffering_n another_o man_n can_v inflict_v upon_o he_o especial_o in_o matter_n spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a it_o be_v argument_n and_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o reason_n together_o with_o the_o power_n of_o god_n reach_v the_o heart_n that_o can_v change_v a_o man_n mind_n from_o one_o opinion_n to_o another_o and_o not_o knock_n and_o blow_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o may_v well_o destroy_v the_o body_n but_o can_v never_o inform_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v a_o free_a agent_n and_o must_v either_o accept_v or_o reject_v matter_n of_o opinion_n as_o they_o be_v bear_v in_o upon_o it_o by_o something_o proportional_a to_o its_o own_o nature_n to_o seek_v to_o force_v mind_n in_o any_o other_o manner_n be_v to_o deal_v with_o man_n as_o if_o they_o be_v brute_n void_a of_o understanding_n and_o at_o last_o be_v but_o to_o lose_v one_o labour_n and_o as_o the_o proverb_n be_v to_o seek_v to_o wash_v the_o blackmore_n white_a by_o that_o course_n indeed_o man_n may_v be_v make_v hypocrite_n but_o can_v never_o be_v make_v christian_n and_o sure_o the_o product_n of_o such_o compulsion_n even_o where_o the_o end_n be_v obtain_v to_o wit_n a_o outward_a assent_n or_o conformity_n whether_o in_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n can_v be_v no_o way_n acceptable_a to_o god_n who_o desire_v not_o any_o sacrifice_n except_o that_o which_o come_v thorough_o from_o the_o heart_n and_o will_v have_v no_o constrain_v one_o so_o that_o man_n so_o constrain_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v make_v ten-times_o more_o the_o servant_n of_o satan_n than_o before_o in_o that_o to_o their_o error_n be_v add_v hypocrisy_n the_o worst_a of_o evil_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o which_o above_o all_o thing_n the_o lord_n soul_n most_o abhor_v but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v their_o error_n notwithstanding_o be_v thereby_o suppress_v obj._n and_o the_o scandal_n remove_v i_o answer_v beside_o that_o this_o be_v a_o method_n no_o way_n allow_v by_o christ_n answ._n as_o be_v above_o prove_v sure_o the_o church_n can_v be_v no_o way_n better_v by_o the_o accession_n of_o hypocrite_n but_o great_o corrupt_v and_o endanger_v for_o open_a heresy_n man_n be_v aware_a of_o and_o shun_v such_o as_o profess_v they_o when_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n by_o her_o censure_n but_o secret_a hypocrite_n may_v putrify_v the_o body_n and_o leaven_n it_o ere_o man_n be_v aware_a and_o if_o the_o dissenter_n prove_v resolute_a and_o suffer_v bold_o for_o the_o opinion_n they_o esteem_v right_a experience_n show_v that_o such_o suffering_n often_o tend_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o sufferer_n but_o never_o of_o the_o persecutor_n for_o such_o suffer_v ordinary_o breed_v compassion_n and_o beget_v a_o curiosity_n in_o other_o to_o inquire_v the_o more_o diligent_o into_o the_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o see_v man_n suffer_v so_o great_a loss_n so_o bold_o and_o be_v also_o able_a to_o beget_v a_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v for_o some_o good_a they_o do_v suffer_v it_o be_v no_o way_n probable_a that_o man_n will_v venture_v all_o mere_o to_o acquire_v fame_n which_o may_v as_o well_o be_v urge_v to_o detract_v from_o the_o reputation_n of_o all_o the_o martyr_n unless_o some_o better_a argument_n be_v bring_v against_o it_o than_o a_o halter_n or_o a_o faggot_n but_o suppose_v this_o principle_n that_o the_o magistrate_n have_v power_n to_o force_v the_o conscience_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o to_o punish_v they_o if_o they_o will_v not_o comply_v very_o great_a inconvenience_n and_o absurdity_n will_v follow_v and_o even_o such_o as_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o first_o it_o will_v natural_o follow_v that_o the_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o do_v it_o and_o sin_v by_o omission_n of_o his_o duty_n if_o he_o do_v it_o not_o will_v it_o not_o then_o hence_o be_v infer_v that_o christ_n be_v defective_a to_o his_o church_n who_o have_v power_n to_o force_v man_n and_o for_o to_o call_v for_o legion_n of_o angel_n so_o to_o do_v do_v notwithstanding_o exert_v that_o power_n but_o lest_o his_o church_n to_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o wicked_a without_o so_o necessary_a a_o bulwark_n second_o see_v every_o magistrate_n be_v to_o exercise_v his_o power_n according_a to_o the_o best_a understanding_n he_o have_v be_v oblige_v so_o to_o do_v for_o the_o promote_a of_o what_o he_o in_o conscience_n be_v persuade_v to_o be_v truth_n will_v not_o this_o justify_v all_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n in_o their_o persecution_n against_o christian_n will_v not_o this_o justify_v the_o spanish_a inquisition_n which_o yet_o be_v odious_a not_o only_o to_o protestant_n but_o to_o many_o moderate_a papist_n how_o can_v protestant_n in_o reason_n condemn_v the_o papist_n for_o persecute_v they_o see_v they_o do_v but_o exercise_v a_o lawful_a power_n according_a to_o their_o conscience_n and_o best_a understanding_n and_o do_v no_o more_o to_o they_o than_o the_o sufferer_n profess_v they_o will_v do_v to_o they_o if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o like_a capacity_n which_o take_v away_o all_o ground_n of_o commiseration_n from_o the_o sufferer_n whereas_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n that_o gain_v of_o old_a reputation_n to_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o be_v innocent_a suffer_v who_o neither_o have_v nor_o by_o principle_n can_v hurt_v any_o but_o there_o be_v little_a reason_n to_o pity_v one_o that_o be_v but_o deal_v by_o according_a as_o he_o will_v deal_v with_o other_o for_o to_o say_v they_o have_v not_o reason_n to_o persecute_v we_o because_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n and_o we_o in_o the_o right_n be_v but_o miserable_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n do_v not_o this_o doctrine_n strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o persecutor_n every_o where_o and_o that_o rational_o from_o a_o principle_n of_o self_n preservation_n for_o who_o can_v blame_v i_o for_o destroy_v he_o that_o i_o know_v wait_v but_o for_o a_o occasion_n to_o destroy_v i_o if_o he_o can_v yea_o this_o make_v all_o suffering_n for_o religion_n which_o of_o old_a be_v the_o glory_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v but_o of_o pure_a necessity_n whereby_o they_o be_v not_o lead_v as_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n as_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o their_o salvation_n but_o rather_o as_o wolf_n catch_v in_o the_o snare_n who_o only_o bite_v not_o again_o
because_o they_o be_v not_o able_a but_o can_v they_o get_v force_n will_v be_v as_o ready_a to_o lead_v those_o the_o same_o way_n that_o lead_v they_o where_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o a_o small_a glory_n to_o make_v a_o virtue_n of_o necessity_n and_o suffer_v because_o i_o can_v help_v it_o every_o thief_n and_o murderer_n be_v a_o martyr_n at_o that_o rate_n experience_n have_v abundant_o prove_v this_o in_o these_o last_o century_n for_o however_o each_o party_n talk_v of_o passive_o obey_v the_o magistrate_n in_o such_o case_n and_o that_o the_o power_n reside_v in_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o from_o this_o principle_n it_o natural_o follow_v that_o any_o party_n suppose_v themselves_o right_a shall_v so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v able_a endeavour_n at_o any_o rate_n to_o get_v uppermost_a that_o they_o may_v bring_v under_o those_o of_o another_o opinion_n and_o force_v the_o magistrate_n to_o uphold_v their_o way_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o all_o other_o what_o engine_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n use_v to_o make_v of_o his_o pretend_a power_n in_o this_o thing_n upon_o any_o pretence_n of_o dislike_n to_o any_o prince_n or_o state_n even_o for_o very_o small_a heresy_n in_o their_o own_o account_n to_o depose_v prince_n and_o set_v up_o their_o subject_n against_o they_o and_o give_v their_o dominion_n to_o other_o prince_n to_o serve_v his_o interest_n they_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o have_v read_v the_o life_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o how_o protestant_n have_v vindicate_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n after_o this_o same_o manner_n be_v apparent_a they_o suffer_v much_o in_o france_n to_o the_o great_a increase_n and_o advantage_n of_o their_o party_n but_o how_o soon_o they_o find_v themselves_o considerable_a and_o have_v get_v some_o prince_n upon_o their_o side_n they_o begin_v to_o let_v the_o king_n know_v that_o they_o must_v either_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n or_o else_o they_o will_v purchase_v it_o not_o by_o suffering_n but_o by_o fight_v and_o the_o experience_n of_o other_o protestant_a state_n show_v that_o if_o henry_n the_o four_o to_o please_v the_o papist_n have_v not_o quit_v his_o religion_n to_o get_v the_o crown_n the_o more_o peaceable_o and_o so_o the_o protestant_n have_v prevail_v with_o the_o sword_n they_o will_v as_o well_o have_v teach_v the_o papist_n with_o the_o faggot_n and_o lead_v they_o to_o the_o stake_n so_o that_o this_o principle_n of_o persecution_n on_o all_o hand_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o those_o misery_n and_o contention_n for_o so_o long_o as_o any_o party_n be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v both_o lawful_a for_o they_o and_o their_o duty_n if_o in_o power_n to_o destroy_v those_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o it_o natural_o follow_v they_o ought_v to_o use_v all_o mean_n possible_a to_o get_v that_o power_n whereby_o they_o may_v secure_v themselves_o in_o the_o ruin_n of_o their_o adversary_n and_o that_o neither_o papist_n nor_o protestant_n judge_v it_o unlawful_a to_o compel_v the_o magistrate_n if_o they_o be_v strong_a enough_o to_o do_v it_o to_o effect_v this_o experience_n show_v it_o to_o be_v a_o know_v popish_a principle_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v a_o heretic_n prince_n and_o absolve_v the_o people_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v abovesaid_a have_v do_v so_o to_o divers_a prince_n and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v defend_v by_o bellarmin_n against_o barclay_n the_o french_a refuse_v henry_n the_o four_o till_o he_o quit_v his_o religion_n and_o as_o for_o protestant_n many_o of_o they_o scruple_n not_o to_o affirm_v that_o wicked_a king_n and_o magistrate_n may_v be_v depose_v and_o kill_v yea_o our_o scotch_a presbyter_n be_v as_o positive_a in_o it_o as_o any_o jesuit_n who_o will_v not_o admit_v this_o present_a charles_n the_o second_o though_o otherwise_o a_o protestant_a prince_n unless_o he_o will_v swear_v to_o renounce_v episcopacy_n a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a difference_n though_o contrary_a to_o his_o conscience_n now_o how_o little_a proportion_n these_o thing_n bear_v with_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o the_o religion_n propagate_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n need_v no_o great_a demonstration_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o notwithstanding_o many_o other_o superstition_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n very_o early_o yet_o this_o of_o persecution_n be_v so_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n as_o we_o have_v assert_v it_o such_o a_o innate_a and_o natural_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o almost_o all_o the_o christian_a writer_n for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n earnest_o contend_v for_o it_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n §_o v._o thus_o athanasius_n it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o piety_n not_o to_o force_v but_o to_o persuade_v ibid._n in_o imitation_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o force_v no_o body_n but_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o will_n of_o every_o one_o to_o follow_v he_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o devil_n because_o he_o have_v nothing_o of_o truth_n use_v knock_n and_o axe_n to_o break_v up_o the_o door_n of_o such_o as_o receive_v he_o but_o our_o saviour_n be_v meek_a teach_v the_o truth_n whosoever_o will_v come_v after_o i_o and_o whosoever_o will_v be_v my_o disciple_n etc._n etc._n but_o constrain_a none_o come_v to_o we_o and_o knock_v rather_o and_o say_v my_o sister_n my_o spouse_n open_a to_o i_o etc._n etc._n and_o enter_v when_o he_o be_v open_v to_o and_o retire_v if_o they_o delay_v and_o will_v not_o open_v unto_o he_o because_o it_o be_v not_o with_o sword_n nor_o dart_n nor_o soldier_n nor_o armour_n that_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v declare_v but_o with_o persuasion_n and_o counsel_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o it_o be_v the_o impious_a arian_n who_o first_o of_o all_o bring_v in_o this_o doctrine_n to_o persecute_v other_o among_o christian_n who_o successor_n both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n who_o athanasius_n thus_o reprove_v further_o 1._o where_o say_v he_o have_v they_o learn_v to_o persecute_v certain_o they_o can_v say_v they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o the_o saint_n but_o this_o have_v be_v give_v they_o and_o teach_v they_o of_o the_o devil_n the_o lord_n command_v indeed_o sometime_o to_o flee_v and_o the_o saint_n sometime_o flee_v but_o to_o persecute_v be_v the_o invention_n and_o argument_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o he_o seek_v against_o all_o and_o after_o he_o say_v in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o arian_n banish_v those_o that_o will_v not_o subscribe_v their_o decree_n they_o show_v that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o christian_n and_o friend_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o now_o o_o lamentable_a say_v hilarius_n it_o be_v the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o earth_n aux_fw-fr that_o recommend_v the_o religion_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v find_v naked_a of_o his_o virtue_n while_o ambition_n must_v give_v credit_n to_o his_o name_n the_o church_n reprove_v and_o fight_v by_o banishment_n and_o prison_n and_o force_v herself_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o once_o be_v believe_v because_o of_o the_o imprisonment_n and_o banishment_n herself_o suffer_v she_o that_o once_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o terror_n of_o her_o persecutor_n depend_v now_o upon_o the_o dignity_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n she_o that_o once_o be_v propagate_v by_o her_o banish_a priest_n now_o banish_v the_o priest_n and_o she_o boast_v now_o that_o she_o be_v love_v of_o the_o world_n who_o can_v not_o have_v be_v christ_n if_o she_o have_v not_o be_v hate_v of_o the_o world_n the_o church_n say_v hierom_n be_v found_v by_o shed_v of_o blood_n the._n and_o by_o suffering_n and_o not_o in_o do_v of_o hurt_n the_o church_n increase_v by_o persecution_n and_o be_v crown_v by_o martyrdom_n ambrose_n speak_v of_o auxentius_n say_v thus_o who_o he_o 3._o viz._n auxentius_n can_v not_o deceive_v by_o discourse_n he_o think_v aught_o to_o be_v kill_v by_o the_o sword_n make_v bloody_a law_n with_o his_o mouth_n write_v they_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o imagine_v that_o a_o edict_n can_v command_v faith_n 27._o and_o the_o same_o ambrose_n say_v that_o go_v into_o france_n he_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o those_o bishop_n that_o require_v that_o heretic_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n chalce_fw-la the_o emperor_n marcio_n who_o assemble_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n protest_v that_o he_o will_v not_o force_v nor_o constrain_v any_o one_o to_o subscribe_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n against_o his_o will_n 1._o hosius_n bishop_n of_o cordua_n testify_v that_o the_o emperor_n constance_n will_v not_o constrain_v any_o to_o be_v orthodox_n const._n hilarius_n say_v further_a that_o god_n teach_v rather_o than_o exact_v the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o
and_o authorise_v his_o commandment_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o his_o heavenly_a work_n he_o will_v not_o that_o any_o shall_v confess_v he_o with_o a_o force_a will_n etc._n etc._n he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a universe_n he_o need_v not_o a_o force_a ebedience_n nor_o require_v a_o constrain_a confession_n 7._o christ_n say_v ambrose_n send_v his_o apostle_n to_o sow_v faith_n not_o to_o constrian_a but_o to_o teach_v not_o to_o exercise_v coercive_a power_n but_o to_o extol_v the_o doctrine_n of_o humility_n hence_o cyprian_n 62._o compare_v the_o old_a covenant_n with_o the_o new_a say_v than_o be_v they_o put_v to_o death_n with_o the_o outward_a sword_n but_o now_o the_o proud_a and_o contumacious_a be_v cut_v off_o with_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n by_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o answer_n very_o well_o that_o objection_n before_o observe_v take_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o law_n 2._o see_v say_v tertullian_n to_o the_o heathen_n if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o contribute_v to_o the_o renown_n of_o irreligion_n to_o seek_v to_o take_v away_o the_o liberty_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o hinder_v man_n their_o choice_n of_o god_n that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o adore_v who_o i_o will_v but_o must_v be_v constrain_v to_o serve_v he_o who_o i_o will_v not_o there_o be_v none_o nay_o not_o a_o man_n that_o desire_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o any_o against_o their_o will_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o easy_o appear_v to_o be_v unjust_a to_o constrain_v and_o force_v man_n to_o sacrifice_v against_o their_o will_n see_v to_o do_v the_o service_n of_o god_n there_o be_v require_v a_o willing_a heart_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o humane_a right_n and_o natural_a power_n that_o every_o one_o worship_n what_o he_o esteem_v and_o one_o man_n religion_n do_v not_o profit_v nor_o hurt_v another_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o piece_n of_o religion_n to_o enforce_v religion_n which_o must_v be_v undertake_v by_o consent_n and_o not_o by_o violence_n see_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n themselves_o be_v not_o require_v but_o from_o a_o willing-mind_n now_o how_o either_o papist_n or_o protestant_n that_o boast_n of_o antiquity_n can_v get_v by_o these_o plain_a testimony_n let_v any_o rational_a man_n judge_v and_o indeed_o i_o much_o question_n if_o in_o any_o one_o point_n own_v by_o they_o and_o deny_v by_o we_o they_o can_v find_v all_o the_o old_a father_n and_o writer_n so_o exact_o unanimous_a which_o show_v how_o contrary_a all_o of_o they_o judge_v this_o to_o be_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o in_o the_o point_n of_o persecution_n lay_v no_o small_a part_n of_o the_o apostasy_n which_o from_o little_a to_o more_o come_v to_o that_o that_o the_o pope_n upon_o every_o small_a discontent_n will_v excommunicate_v prince_n absolve_v their_o subject_n from_o obey_v they_o and_o turn_v they_o in_o and_o out_o at_o his_o pleasure_n now_o if_o protestant_n do_v just_o abhor_v these_o thing_n among_o papist_n be_v it_o not_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v the_o like_o themselves_o a_o thing_n that_o at_o their_o first_o appearance_n when_o they_o be_v in_o their_o primitive_a innocency_n they_o do_v not_o think_v on_o as_o appear_v by_o that_o say_n of_o luther_n babylonica_fw-la neither_o pope_n nor_o bishop_n nor_o any_o other_o man_n have_v power_n to_o oblige_v a_o christian_a to_o one_o syllable_n except_o it_o be_v by_o his_o own_o consent_n and_o again_o i_o call_v bold_o to_o christian_n that_o neither_o man_n nor_o angel_n can_v impose_v any_o law_n upon_o they_o but_o so_o far_o as_o they_o will_v for_o we_o be_v free_a of_o all_o and_o when_o he_o appear_v at_o the_o diet_n of_o spiers_n before_o the_o emperor_n in_o a_o particular_a conference_n he_o have_v before_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o trier_n and_o joachim_n elector_n of_o brandenburg_n when_o there_o seem_v no_o possibility_n of_o agree_v he_o with_o his_o opposer_n they_o ask_v he_o what_o remedy_n seem_v to_o he_o most_o fit_a he_o answer_v the_o counsel_n that_o gamaliel_n propose_v to_o the_o jew_n to_o wit_n that_o if_o this_o design_n be_v of_o god_n it_o will_v stand_v if_o not_o it_o will_v vanish_v which_o he_o say_v aught_o to_o content_v the_o pope_n he_o do_v not_o say_v because_o he_o be_v in_o the_o right_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v spare_v trent_n for_o this_o counsel_n suppose_v that_o those_o that_o be_v tolerate_v may_v be_v wrong_a and_o yet_o how_o soon_o do_v the_o same_o luther_n ere_o he_o be_v well_o secure_a himself_o press_v the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n to_o banish_v poor_a carolostadius_fw-la because_o he_o can_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n submit_v to_o his_o judgement_n and_o certain_o it_o be_v not_o without_o ground_n report_v that_o it_o smite_v luther_n to_o the_o heart_n so_o that_o he_o need_v to_o be_v comfort_v when_o he_o be_v inform_v that_o carolostadius_fw-la in_o his_o letter_n to_o his_o congregation_n style_v himself_o a_o man_n banish_v for_o conscience_n by_o the_o procurement_n of_o martin_n luther_n and_o since_o both_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n not_o admit_v one_o another_o to_o worship_n in_o those_o respective_a dominion_n show_v how_o little_a better_o they_o be_v that_o either_o papist_n or_o arian_n in_o this_o particular_a and_o yet_o calvin_n say_v 14._o that_o the_o conscience_n be_v free_a from_o the_o power_n of_o all_o man_n if_o so_o why_o then_o do_v he_o cause_n castellio_n to_o be_v banish_v because_o he_o can_v not_o for_o conscience_n sake_n believe_v as_o he_o do_v that_o god_n have_v ordain_v man_n to_o be_v damn_v and_o servetus_n to_o be_v burn_v for_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n if_o calvin_n report_n of_o he_o be_v to_o be_v credit_v which_o opinion_n though_o it_o be_v indeed_o to_o be_v abominate_v yet_o no_o less_o be_v calvin_n practice_n in_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v burn_v and_o afterward_o defend_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o burn_v heretic_n by_o which_o he_o encourage_v the_o papist_n to_o lead_v his_o follower_n the_o more_o confident_o to_o the_o stake_n as_o have_v for_o their_o warrant_n the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o sect-master_n which_o they_o omit_v not_o frequent_o to_o twit_v they_o with_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v to_o they_o unanswerable_a hence_o upon_o this_o occasion_n the_o judicious_a author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o couneil_n of_o trent_n in_o his_o five_o book_n where_o give_v a_o account_n of_o several_a protestant_n that_o be_v burn_v for_o their_o religion_n well_o and_o wise_o observe_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o astonishment_n that_o those_o of_o the_o new_a reformation_n do_v offer_v to_o punish_v in_o case_n of_o religion_n and_o afterward_o take_v notice_n that_o calvin_n justify_v the_o punish_n of_o heretic_n he_o add_v but_o since_o the_o name_n of_o heresy_n may_v be_v more_o or_o less_o restrict_v yea_o or_o diverse_o take_v this_o doctrine_n may_v be_v likewise_o take_v in_o divers_a sense_n and_o may_v at_o one_o time_n hurt_v those_o who_o at_o another_o time_n it_o may_v have_v benifit_v so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o persecution_n can_v be_v mention_v by_o protestant_n without_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o popish_a inquisitor_n and_o indeed_o in_o the_o end_n land_n in_o direct_a popery_n see_v if_o i_o may_v not_o profess_v and_o preach_v that_o religion_n which_o i_o be_o persuade_v of_o in_o my_o conscience_n be_v true_a it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n or_o to_o seek_v to_o choose_v my_o own_o faith_n by_o conviction_n thence_o derive_v since_o whatever_o i_o there_o observe_v or_o be_o persuade_v of_o i_o must_v either_o subject_n to_o the_o jungment_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o church_n of_o that_o place_n i_o be_o in_o or_o else_o resolve_v to_o remove_v or_o die_v yea_o do_v not_o this_o heretical_a and_o anti-christian_n doctrine_n both_o of_o papist_n and_o protestant_n at_o last_o resolve_n into_o that_o curse_a policy_n of_o mahomet_n who_o prohibit_v all_o reason_n or_o discourse_n about_o religion_n as_o occasion_v faction_n and_o division_n and_o indeed_o those_o that_o press_v persecution_n and_o deny_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n do_v thereby_o show_v themselves_o more_o the_o disciple_n of_o mahomet_n than_o of_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o be_v no_o way_n follower_n of_o he_o apostle_n doctrine_n who_o desire_v the_o thessalonian_n 1_o thess._n 5.21_o to_o prove_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o also_o say_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v god_n shall_v reveal_v it_o phil._n 3.15_o not_o that_o by_o beat_n and_o banishment_n it_o must_v be_v knock_v into_o they_o §_o vi_o now_o the_o ground_n of_o persecution_n as_o have_v be_v above_o show_v be_v a_o unwillingness_n to_o
this_o be_v against_o your_o profession_n as_o if_o indeed_o so_o to_o do_v be_v very_o consistent_a with_o they_o wherein_o though_o they_o speak_v the_o truth_n yet_o they_o give_v away_o their_o cause_n but_o if_o they_o can_v find_v any_o under_o our_o name_n in_o any_o of_o those_o evil_n common_a among_o themselves_o as_o who_o can_v imagine_v but_o among_o so_o many_o thousand_o there_o will_v be_v some_o chaff_n since_o of_o twelve_o apostle_n one_o be_v find_v so_o be_v a_o devil_n o_o how_o will_v they_o insult_v and_o make_v more_o noise_n of_o the_o escape_n of_o one_o quaker_n than_o of_o a_o hundred_o among_o themselves_o §_o ii_o but_o there_o be_v some_o singular_a thing_n which_o most_o of_o all_o our_o adversary_n plead_v for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o and_o allow_v themselves_o in_o as_o no_o way_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o we_o have_v find_v to_o be_v no_o way_n lawful_a unto_o we_o and_o have_v be_v command_v of_o the_o lord_n to_o lay_v they_o aside_o though_o the_o do_v thereof_o have_v occasion_v no_o small_a suffering_n and_o buffet_n and_o have_v procure_v we_o much_o hatred_n and_o malice_n from_o the_o world_n and_o because_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v such_o that_o they_o do_v upon_o the_o very_a sight_n distinguish_v we_o and_o make_v we_o know_v so_o that_o we_o can_v hide_v ourselves_o from_o any_o without_o prove_v unfaithful_a to_o our_o testimony_n our_o trial_n and_o exercise_n have_v herethrough_a prove_v the_o more_o numerous_a and_o difficult_a as_o will_v after_o appear_v these_o i_o have_v labour_v brief_o to_o comprehend_v in_o this_o proposition_n but_o they_o may_v more_o large_o be_v exhibit_v in_o those_o six_o follow_a proposition_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o give_v to_o man_n such_o flatter_a title_n as_o your_o holiness_n your_o majesty_n your_o eminency_n your_o excellency_n your_o grace_n your_o lordship_n your_o honour_n etc._n etc._n nor_o use_v those_o flatter_a word_n common_o call_v compliment_n 2._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o kneel_v or_o prostrate_v themselves_o to_o any_o man_n or_o to_o bow_v the_o body_n or_o to_o uncover_v the_o head_n to_o they_o 3._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o use_v superfluity_n in_o apparel_n as_o be_v of_o no_o use_n save_v for_o ornament_n and_o vanity_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o use_v game_n sport_n play_n nor_o among_o other_o thing_n comedy_n among_o christian_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o recreation_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o christian_a silence_n gravity_n and_o sobriety_n for_o laugh_v sport_v game_n mock_a jest_a talk_a etc._n etc._n be_v not_o christian_a liberty_n nor_o harmless_a mirth_n 5._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o swear_v at_o all_o under_o the_o gospel_n not_o only_o not_o vain_o and_o in_o their_o common_a discourse_n which_o be_v also_o forbid_v under_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n but_o even_o not_o in_o judgement_n before_o the_o magistrate_n 6._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o resist_v evil_a or_o to_o war_n or_o fight_v in_o any_o case_n before_o i_o enter_v upon_o a_o particular_a disquisition_n of_o these_o thing_n i_o shall_v first_o premise_v some_o general_a consideration_n to_o prevent_v all_o mistake_n and_o next_o add_v some_o general_a consideration_n which_o equal_o respect_v all_o of_o they_o i_o will_v not_o have_v any_o judge_n that_o hereby_o we_o intend_v to_o destroy_v the_o mutual_a relation_n that_o either_o be_v betwixt_o prince_n and_o people_n master_n and_o servant_n parent_n and_o child_n nay_o not_o at_o all_o we_o shall_v evidence_n that_o our_o principle_n in_o these_o thing_n have_v no_o such_o tendency_n and_o that_o these_o natural_a relation_n be_v rather_o better_o establish_v than_o any_o way_n hurt_v by_o it_o next_o let_v not_o any_o judge_n that_o from_o our_o opinion_n in_o these_o thing_n any_o necessity_n of_o level_v will_v follow_v or_o that_o all_o man_n must_v have_v thing_n in_o common_a our_o principle_n leave_v every_o man_n to_o enjoy_v that_o peaceable_o which_o either_o his_o own_o industry_n or_o parent_n have_v purchase_v to_o he_o only_o he_o be_v thereby_o instruct_v to_o use_v it_o aright_o both_o for_o his_o own_o good_a and_o that_o of_o his_o brethren_n and_o all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o which_o also_o his_o act_n be_v to_o be_v voluntary_a and_o no_o way_n constrain_v and_o further_o we_o say_v not_o hereby_o that_o no_o man_n may_v use_v the_o creation_n more_o or_o less_o than_o another_o for_o we_o know_v that_o as_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o dispense_v it_o diverse_o give_v to_o some_o more_o and_o some_o less_o so_o they_o may_v use_v it_o according_o the_o several_a condition_n under_o which_o man_n be_v diverse_o state_v together_o with_o their_o education_n answer_v thereunto_o do_v sufficient_o show_v this_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o the_o same_o way_n educate_v as_o the_o master_n nor_o the_o tenant_n as_o the_o landlord_n nor_o the_o rich_a as_o the_o poor_a nor_o the_o prince_n as_o the_o peasant_n now_o though_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o however_o great_a abundance_n they_o may_v have_v or_o whatever_o their_o education_n may_v be_v to_o use_v that_o which_o be_v mere_o superfluous_a yet_o see_v their_o education_n have_v accustom_v they_o thereunto_o and_o their_o capacity_n enable_v they_o so_o to_o do_v without_o be_v profuse_a or_o extravagant_a they_o may_v use_v thing_n better_o in_o their_o kind_n than_o such_o who_o education_n have_v neither_o accustom_v they_o to_o such_o thing_n nor_o their_o capacity_n will_v reach_v to_o compass_v they_o for_o it_o be_v beyond_o question_n that_o whatever_o thing_n the_o creation_n afford_v be_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n and_o the_o moderate_a use_n of_o they_o be_v lawful_a yet_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la they_o may_v be_v unlawful_a to_o some_o and_o not_o to_o other_o as_o for_o instance_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o estate_n and_o education_n have_v be_v use_v to_o eat_v flesh_n and_o drink_n wine_n to_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o fine_a wool_n if_o his_o estate_n bear_v it_o and_o he_o use_v it_o neither_o in_o superfluity_n nor_o immoderate_o he_o may_v do_v it_o and_o perhaps_o if_o he_o shall_v apply_v himself_o to_o feed_v or_o be_v clothe_v as_o be_v the_o peasant_n it_o may_v prejudice_v the_o health_n of_o his_o body_n and_o nothing_o advance_v his_o soul_n but_o if_o a_o man_n who_o estate_n and_o education_n have_v accustom_v to_o both_o courser_n food_n and_o raiment_n shall_v stretch_v himself_o beyond_o what_o he_o have_v or_o be_v use_v to_o to_o the_o manifest_a prejudice_n of_o his_o family_n and_o child_n no_o doubt_n it_o will_v be_v unlawful_a to_o he_o even_o so_o to_o eat_v or_o be_v clothe_v as_o another_o in_o who_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o that_o that_o other_o may_v as_o much_o mortify_v and_o have_v deny_v himself_o as_o much_o in_o come_v down_o to_o that_o which_o this_o aspire_v to_o as_o he_o in_o willing_a to_o be_v like_o he_o aspire_v beyond_o what_o he_o either_o be_v able_a or_o have_v accustom_v to_o the_o safe_a place_n than_o be_v for_o such_o as_o have_v fullness_n to_o watch_v over_o themselves_o that_o they_o use_v it_o moderate_o and_o rescind_v all_o superfluity_n be_v willing_a so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v to_o help_v the_o need_n of_o those_o to_o who_o providence_n have_v allot_v a_o small_a allowance_n let_v the_o brother_n of_o high_a degree_n rejoice_v in_o that_o he_o be_v abase_v and_o such_o as_o god_n call_v in_o a_o low_a degree_n to_o be_v content_a with_o their_o condition_n not_o envy_v those_o brethren_n who_o have_v great_a abundance_n know_v they_o have_v receive_v abundance_n as_o to_o the_o inward_a man_n which_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o therefore_o beware_v of_o such_o a_o temptation_n as_o to_o use_v their_o call_n as_o a_o engine_n to_o be_v rich_a know_v they_o have_v this_o advantage_n beyond_o the_o rich_a and_o noble_a that_o be_v call_v that_o the_o truth_n do_v not_o any_o way_n abase_v they_o nay_o not_o in_o the_o esteem_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o do_v the_o other_o but_o that_o they_o be_v rather_o exalt_v thereby_o in_o that_o as_o to_o the_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a fellowship_n of_o the_o saint_n they_o become_v the_o brethren_n and_o companion_n of_o the_o great_a and_o rich_a and_o in_o this_o respect_n let_v he_o of_o low_a degree_n rejoice_v that_o he_o be_v exalt_v these_o thing_n premise_v i_o will_v serious_o propose_v unto_o all_o such_o as_o mind_n in_o reality_n to_o be_v christian_n indeed_o and_o that_o in_o nature_n and_o not_o in_o name_n only_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o desirable_a and_o will_v not_o
confusion_n therefore_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o persecution_n yea_o and_o other_o who_o with_o we_o do_v witness_n that_o the_o use_n of_o arm_n be_v unlawful_a to_o christian_n do_v look_v asquint_o upon_o we_o but_o which_o of_o we_o two_o do_v most_o faithful_o observe_v this_o testimony_n against_o arm_n either_o they_o who_o at_o certain_a time_n at_o the_o magistrate_n order_n to_o close_v up_o their_o shop_n and_o house_n and_o meet_v in_o their_o assembly_n pray_v for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o their_o arm_n or_o give_v thanks_o for_o some_o victory_n or_o other_o whereby_o they_o make_v themselves_o like_a to_o those_o that_o approve_v war_n and_o fight_v or_o we_o which_o can_v do_v these_o thing_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n of_o conscience_n lest_o we_o shall_v destroy_v by_o our_o work_n what_o we_o establish_v in_o word_n we_o shall_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o prudent_a man_n five_o they_o object_n that_o christ_n luk._n 22.36_o speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n obj._n command_v they_o that_o he_o that_o then_o have_v not_o a_o sword_n shall_v sell_v his_o coat_n and_o buy_v a_o sword_n therefore_o say_v they_o arm_n be_v lawful_a i_o answer_v some_z indeed_o understand_v this_o of_o the_o outward_a sword_n answ._n nevertheless_o regard_v only_o that_o occasion_n otherwise_o judge_v that_o christian_n be_v prohibit_v war_n under_o the_o gospel_n among_o which_o be_v ambrose_n who_o upon_o this_o place_n speak_v thus_o o_o lord_n why_o command_v thou_o i_o to_o buy_v a_o sword_n who_o forbide_v i_o to_o smite_v with_o it_o why_o command_v thou_o i_o to_o have_v it_o who_o thou_o prohibite_v to_o draw_v it_o unless_o perhaps_o a_o defence_n be_v prepare_v not_o a_o necessary_a revenge_n and_o that_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v able_a to_o revenge_n but_o that_o i_o will_v not_o for_o the_o law_n forbid_v i_o to_o smite_v again_o and_o therefore_o perhaps_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n offer_v two_o sword_n it_n be_v enough_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v lawful_a until_o the_o gospel_n time_n that_o in_o the_o law_n there_o may_v be_v a_o learning_n of_o equity_n but_o in_o the_o gospel_n a_o perfection_n of_o goodness_n other_o judge_v christ_n to_o have_v speak_v here_o mystical_o and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n as_o origen_n upon_o matth._n 19_o saying_n if_o any_o look_v to_o the_o letter_n and_o not_o understand_v the_o will_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v sell_v his_o bodily_a garment_n and_o buy_v a_o sword_n take_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n contrary_a to_o his_o will_n he_o shall_v perish_v but_o concern_v which_o sword_n he_o speak_v be_v not_o proper_a here_o to_o mention_v and_o true_o when_o we_o consider_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o disciple_n master_n behold_v here_o be_v two_o sword_n understand_v it_o of_o outward_a sword_n and_o again_o christ_n answer_n it_o be_v enough_o it_o seem_v that_o christ_n will_v not_o that_o the_o rest_n who_o have_v not_o sword_n for_o they_o have_v only_o two_o sword_n shall_v sell_v their_o coat_n and_o buy_v a_o outward_a sword_n who_o can_v think_v that_o matter_n stand_v thus_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v two_o be_v enough_o but_o however_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o use_n of_o arm_n be_v unlawful_a under_o the_o gospel_n six_o they_o object_n that_o the_o scripture_n and_o old_a father_n so_o call_v obj._n do_v only_o prohibit_v private_a revenge_n not_o the_o use_n of_o arm_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o country_n body_n wife_n child_n and_o good_n when_o the_o magistrate_n command_v it_o see_v the_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o be_v obey_v therefore_o albeit_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o private_a man_n to_o do_v it_o of_o themselves_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o it_o by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o magistrate_n i_o answer_v if_o the_o magistrate_n be_v true_o a_o christian_n or_o desire_n to_o be_v so_o he_o ought_v himself_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o his_o master_n say_v love_n your_o enemy_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o can_v not_o command_v we_o to_o kill_v they_o but_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o true_a christian_a then_o ought_v we_o to_o obey_v our_o lord_n and_o king_n jesus_n christ_n to_o who_o he_o ought_v also_o to_o obey_v for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n all_o aught_o to_o submit_v to_o his_o law_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a that_o be_v from_o the_o king_n to_o the_o beggar_n and_o from_o caesar_n to_o the_o clown_n but_o alas_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v such_o a_o obedience_n o_o deplorable_a fall_n concern_v which_o ludou._n viu._n write_v well_o lib._n de_fw-fr con_fw-mi vit_fw-mi christ._n sub_fw-la turc_n by_o relation_n of_o fredericus_fw-la silvius_n disc_n the_o revol_n belg._n p._n 85._o the_o prince_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n not_o as_o a_o true_a and_o plain_a christian_a which_o have_v indeed_o be_v most_o happy_a and_o desirable_a but_o he_o bring_v in_o with_o he_o his_o nobility_n his_o honour_n his_o arm_n his_o ensign_n his_o triumph_n his_o haughtiness_n his_o pride_n his_o superciliousness_n that_o be_v he_o come_v into_o the_o house_n of_o christ_n accompany_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o which_o can_v no_o way_n be_v do_v he_o will_v have_v join_v two_o house_n and_o two_o city_n together_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n which_o can_v not_o more_o be_v do_v than_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n which_o be_v distant_a by_o so_o long_a a_o tract_n both_o of_o sea_n and_o land_n what_o communion_n say_v paul_n be_v there_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o belial_n their_o zeal_n cool_v by_o degree_n their_o faith_n decrease_v their_o whole_a piety_n degenerate_v instead_o whereof_o we_o make_v now_o use_v of_o shadow_n and_o image_n and_o as_o he_o say_v i_o will_v we_o can_v but_o retain_v these_o thus_o far_o vives_n but_o last_o as_o to_o what_o relate_v to_o this_o thing_n since_o nothing_o seem_v more_o contrary_a to_o man_n nature_n and_o see_v of_o all_o thing_n the_o defence_n of_o one_o self_n seem_v most_o tolerable_a as_o it_o be_v most_o hard_a to_o man_n so_o it_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n as_o that_o wherein_o the_o denial_n of_o self_n and_o entire_a confidence_n in_o god_n do_v most_o appear_v and_o therefore_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v we_o hereof_o a_o most_o perfect_a example_n as_o to_o what_o relate_v to_o the_o present_a magistrate_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n albeit_o we_o deny_v they_o not_o altogether_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n because_o of_o the_o public_a profession_n they_o make_v of_o christ_n name_n yet_o we_o may_v bold_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n because_o in_o the_o state_n in_o which_o they_o be_v as_o in_o many_o place_n before_o i_o have_v large_o observe_v they_o have_v not_o come_v to_o the_o pure_a dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o while_o they_o be_v in_o that_o condition_n we_o shall_v not_o say_v that_o war_n undertake_v upon_o a_o just_a occasion_n be_v altogether_o unlawful_a to_o they_o for_o even_o as_o circumcision_n and_o the_o other_o ceremony_n be_v for_o a_o season_n permit_v to_o the_o jew_n not_o because_o they_o be_v either_o necessary_a or_o of_o themselves_o or_o lawful_a at_o that_o time_n after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o that_o spirit_n be_v not_o yet_o raise_v up_o in_o they_o whereby_o they_o can_v be_v deliver_v from_o such_o rudiment_n so_o the_o present_a confessor_n of_o the_o christian_a name_n who_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o mixture_n and_o not_o in_o the_o patient_a suffer_a spirit_n be_v not_o yet_o fit_v for_o this_o form_n of_o christianity_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v undefend_v themselves_o until_o they_o attain_v that_o perfection_n but_o for_o such_o who_o christ_n have_v bring_v hither_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o defend_v themselves_o by_o arm_n but_o they_o ought_v over_o all_o to_o trust_v to_o the_o lord_n §_o xvi_o but_o last_o to_o conclude_v if_o to_o give_v and_o receive_v flatter_a title_n which_o be_v not_o use_v because_o of_o the_o virtue_n inherent_a in_o the_o person_n but_o be_v for_o most_o part_n bestow_v by_o wicked_a man_n upon_o such_o as_o themselves_o if_o to_o bow_v scrape_v and_o cringe_v to_o one_o another_o if_o at_o every_o time_n to_o call_v one_o another_o humble_a servant_n and_o that_o most_o frequent_o without_o any_o design_n of_o real_a service_n if_o this_o be_v the_o honour_n that_o come_v from_o god_n and_o not_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v from_o below_o then_o indeed_o our_o adversary_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v believer_n and_o we_o condemn_v as_o proud_a and_o stubborn_a in_o deny_v all_o these_o thing_n but_o if_o with_o mordecai_n to_o refuse_v to_o bow_v to_o proud_a
haman_n 22._o and_o with_o elihu_n not_o to_o give_v flatter_a title_n to_o man_n lest_o we_o shall_v be_v reprove_v of_o our_o maker_n and_o if_o according_a to_o peter_n example_n and_o the_o angel_n advice_n to_o bow_v only_o to_o god_n and_o not_o to_o our_o fellow-servant_n and_o if_o to_o call_v no_o man_n lord_n nor_o master_n except_o under_o particular_a relation_n according_a to_o christ_n command_n i_o say_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reprove_v then_o be_v we_o not_o blame-worthy_a in_o so_o do_v if_o to_o be_v vain_a and_o gaudy_a in_o apparel_n if_o to_o paint_v the_o face_n and_o plait_fw-fr the_o hair_n if_o to_o be_v clothe_v with_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o if_o to_o be_v fill_v with_o ribbon_n and_o lace_n be_v to_o be_v clothe_v in_o modest_a apparel_n and_o if_o these_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o christian_n and_o if_o that_o be_v to_o be_v humble_a meek_a and_o mortify_v then_o be_v our_o adversary_n good_a christian_n indeed_o and_o we_o proud_a singular_a and_o conceit_v in_o content_v ourselves_o with_o what_o need_n and_o conveniency_n call_v for_o and_o condemn_v what_o be_v more_o as_o superfluous_a but_o not_o otherwise_o if_o to_o use_v game_n sport_n play_n if_o to_o card_v dice_n and_o dance_v if_o to_o sing_v fiddle_n and_o pipe_n if_o to_o use_v stage_n play_v and_o comedy_n and_o to_o lie_v counterfeit_v and_o dissemble_v be_v to_o fear_v always_o and_o if_o that_o be_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o if_o that_o be_v to_o pass_v our_o sojourn_v here_o in_o fear_n and_o if_o that_o be_v to_o use_v this_o world_n as_o if_o we_o do_v not_o use_v it_o and_o if_o that_o be_v not_o to_o fashion_v ourselves_o according_a to_o our_o former_a lust_n to_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o vain_a conversation_n of_o this_o world_n then_o be_v our_o adversary_n notwithstanding_o they_o use_v these_o thing_n and_o plead_v for_o they_o very_o good_a sober_a mortify_v and_o self-denied_n christian_n and_o we_o just_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o judge_v they_o but_o not_o otherwise_o if_o the_o profanation_n of_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n if_o to_o exact_a oath_n one_o from_o another_o upon_o every_o light_a occasion_n if_o to_o call_v god_n to_o witness_v in_o thing_n of_o such_o a_o nature_n in_o which_o no_o earthly_a king_n will_v think_v himself_o lawful_o and_o honourable_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n i_o shall_v confess_v that_o our_o adversary_n be_v excellent_a good_a christian_n and_o we_o want_v in_o our_o duty_n but_o if_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a of_o necessity_n our_o obedience_n to_o god_n in_o this_o thing_n must_v be_v acceptable_a if_o to_o revenge_v ourselves_o or_o to_o render_v injury_n evil_a for_o evil_n wound_n for_o wound_n to_o take_v eye_n for_o eye_n tooth_n for_o tooth_n if_o to_o fight_v for_o outward_a and_o perish_a thing_n to_o go_v a_o war_a one_o against_o another_o who_o we_o never_o see_v nor_o with_o who_o we_o never_o have_v any_o contest_v nor_o any_o thing_n to_o do_v be_v moreover_o altogether_o ignorant_a of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o war_n but_o only_o that_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o nation_n foment_n quarrel_v one_o against_o another_o the_o cause_n whereof_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n unknown_a to_o the_o soldier_n that_o fight_v as_o well_o as_o upon_o who_o side_n the_o right_n or_o wrong_n be_v and_o yet_o to_o be_v so_o furious_a and_o rage_v one_o against_o another_o to_o destroy_v and_o spoil_v all_o that_o this_o or_o the_o other_o worship_n may_v be_v receive_v or_o abolish_v if_o to_o do_v this_o and_o much_o more_o of_o this_o kind_n be_v to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n then_o be_v our_o adversary_n indeed_o true_a christian_n and_o we_o miserable_a heretic_n that_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v spoil_v take_v imprison_a banish_a beat_a and_o evil_o entreat_v without_o any_o resistance_n place_v our_o trust_n only_o in_o god_n that_o he_o may_v defend_v we_o and_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o cross_n unto_o his_o kingdom_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherways_o we_o shall_v certain_o receive_v the_o reward_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o those_o that_o cleave_v to_o he_o and_o in_o deny_v themselves_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o to_o sum_v up_o all_o if_o to_o use_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o many_o more_o that_o may_v be_v instance_a be_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o strait_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n be_v to_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o die_v with_o he_o to_o the_o lust_n and_o perish_a vanity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o arise_v with_o he_o in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o sit_v down_o with_o he_o in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n then_o our_o adversary_n may_v be_v account_v such_o and_o they_o need_v not_o fear_v they_o be_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n and_o we_o be_v great_o mistake_v that_o have_v lay_v aside_o all_o these_o thing_n for_o christ_n sake_n to_o the_o crucify_a of_o our_o own_o lust_n and_o to_o the_o procure_n to_o ourselves_o shame_n reproach_n hatred_n and_o ill-will_n from_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n not_o as_o if_o by_o so_o do_v we_o judge_v to_o merit_v heaven_n but_o as_o know_v they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o he_o who_o redeem_v his_o child_n from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o its_o lust_n and_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n in_o which_o they_o take_v delight_n to_o walk_v the_o conclusion_n if_o in_o god_n fear_n candid_a reader_n thou_o apply'_v thyself_o to_o consider_v this_o system_fw-la of_o religion_n here_o deliver_v with_o its_o consistency_n and_o harmony_n as_o well_o in_o itself_o as_o with_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v with_o i_o and_o many_o more_o that_o this_o be_v the_o spiritual_a day_n of_o christ_n appearance_n wherein_o he_o be_v again_o reveal_v the_o ancient_a path_n of_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n for_o thou_o may_v observe_v here_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o part_n true_o establish_v and_o vindicate_v as_o it_o be_v a_o live_n inward_a spiritual_a pure_a and_o substantial_a thing_n and_o not_o a_o mere_a form_n show_v shadow_n notion_n and_o opinion_n as_o too_o many_o have_v hitherto_o hold_v it_o who_o fruit_n declare_v they_o want_v that_o which_o they_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o and_o yet_o many_o of_o those_o be_v so_o in_o love_n with_o their_o empty_a form_n and_o shadow_n that_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o calumniate_v we_o for_o commend_v and_o call_v they_o to_o the_o substance_n as_o if_o we_o therefore_o deny_v or_o neglect_v the_o true_a form_n and_o outward_a part_n of_o christianity_n which_o indeed_o be_v as_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n know_v a_o very_a great_a slander_n thus_o because_o we_o have_v desire_v people_n earnest_o to_o feel_v after_o god_n near_o and_o in_o themselves_o tell_v they_o that_o their_o notion_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v beyond_o the_o cloud_n will_v little_o avail_v they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o feel_v he_o near_o hence_o they_o have_v seek_v malicious_o to_o infer_v that_o we_o deny_v any_o god_n except_o that_o which_o be_v within_o we_o because_o we_o tell_v people_n that_o it_o be_v the_o light_n and_o the_o law_n within_o and_o not_o the_o letter_n without_o that_o can_v true_o tell_v they_o their_o condition_n and_o lead_v they_o out_o of_o all_o evil_a hence_o they_o say_v we_o vilify_v the_o scripture_n and_o set_v up_o our_o own_o imagination_n above_o they_o because_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o talk_n or_o believe_v of_o christ_n outward_a life_n suffering_n death_n and_o resurrection_n no_o more_o than_o the_o jew_n cry_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v serve_v their_o turn_n or_o justify_v they_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o that_o they_o must_v know_v christ_n in_o they_o who_o they_o have_v crucify_v to_o be_v raise_v and_o to_o justify_v they_o and_o redeem_v they_o from_o their_o iniquity_n hence_o they_o say_v we_o deny_v the_o life_n death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n justification_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o he_o because_o we_o tell_v they_o while_o they_o be_v talk_v and_o determine_v about_o the_o resurrection_n that_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o know_v the_o just_a one_o who_o they_o have_v slay_v raise_v in_o themselves_o and_o to_o be_v sure_a they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o that_o if_o this_o be_v they_o will_v be_v the_o more_o capable_a to_o judge_n of_o the_o second_o hence_o
their_o doctrine_n 158_o 159._o concern_v the_o possibility_n of_o not_o sin_v 172_o 173._o the_o possibility_n of_o fall_v from_o grace_n 176._o many_o of_o they_o do_v not_o only_o contradict_v one_o another_o but_o themselves_o also_o 211._o concern_v baptism_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 301._o concernin_a a_o oath_n 372._o foot_n concern_v the_o wash_n of_o one_o another_o foot_n 317_o 318_o 319._o franequer_n 222._o free_o the_o gospel_n ought_v to_o be_v preach_v free_o 180_o 221_o 222._o g_o game_n see_v play_n gift_a brethren_n 198._o god_n how_o he_o have_v always_o manifest_v himself_o 3._o unless_o he_o speak_v within_o the_o preacher_n make_v a_o rustle_n to_o no_o purpose_n 5_o 6._o none_o can_v know_v he_o aright_o unless_o he_o receive_v it_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 5_o 6_o 7._o god_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v within_o 7._o he_o be_v know_v by_o sensation_n and_o not_o by_o mere_a speculation_n and_o syllogistic_a demonstration_n 6_o 7._o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n root_n and_o begin_v of_o all_o good_a work_n and_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o eternal_a word_n 10._o god_n speak_v be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n 15._o among_o all_o he_o have_v his_o own_o choose_a one_o 5._o he_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a see_v redemption_n he_o have_v manifest_v his_o love_n in_o send_v his_o son_n 132_o 149_o 150._o see_v justification_n he_o reward_v the_o good_a work_n of_o his_o child_n 157_o 158._o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n 159_o 160._o he_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o only_a judge_n of_o the_o conscience_n 331_o 333._o he_o will_v have_v a_o free_a exercise_n 339._o gospel_n see_v redemption_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v as_o lie_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o profane_a and_o carnal_a man_n 12_o 23_o 24._o the_o nature_n of_o it_o be_v explain_v 25_o 26._o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o law_n and_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o it_o 26_o 42._o see_v covenant_n law_n whether_o any_o aught_o to_o preach_v it_o in_o this_o or_o that_o place_n be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n 42_o 200._o its_o work_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n 152._o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v propagate_v and_o of_o its_o propagation_n 334._o the_o worship_n of_o it_o be_v inward_a 289_o 290._o it_o be_v a_o inward_a power_n 107_o 108._o grace_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n can_v be_v lose_v through_o disobedeince_n 174_o etc._n etc._n save_v grace_n see_v redemption_n which_o be_v require_v in_o the_o call_n and_o qualify_a of_o a_o minister_n see_v minister_n in_o some_o it_o work_v in_o a_o special_a and_o prevalent_a manner_n that_o they_o necessary_o obtain_v salvation_n 96_o 97._o your_o grace_n see_v title_n h_o hai_o ebn_n yokdan_n 126._o hand_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n 199_o 327._o head_n of_o uncover_v the_o head_n in_o salutation_n 350_o 352_o 361_o 362_o 363_o 364_o 365_o 388_o 389._o heart_n the_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a and_o wicked_a 45_o 59_o 60_o 61._o heathen_n albeit_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n yet_o they_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o loss_n by_o the_o fall_n 124._o some_o heathen_n will_v not_o swear_v 378._o heathenish_a ceremony_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o christian_a religion_n 301._o henry_n iu._n king_n of_o france_n 341._o heresy_n whence_o they_o proceed_v 244._o heretic_n 336._o high_a see_v priest_n history_n of_o christ_n see_v quaker_n redemption_n holy_a of_o holys_n the_o highpriest_n enter_v into_o it_o once_o a_o year_n 14_o 15._o but_o now_o all_o of_o we_o at_o all_o time_n have_v access_n unto_o god_n 27._o holiness_n your_o holiness_n see_v title_n honour_n see_v title_n hypocrite_n 336_o 340._o i_o jacob_n 241._o james_n the_o apostle_n there_o be_v of_o old_a divers_a opinion_n concern_v his_o epistle_n 40._o idolatry_n 232_o 245._o whence_o it_o proceed_v 277._o jest_a see_v play_n game_n jesuit_n see_v sect_n ignatian_n jesus_n see_v christ_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o be_v assemble_v in_o his_o name_n 119_o 120_o 132_o 238._o jew_n among_o they_o there_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n 182_o 183._o their_o error_n concern_v the_o outward_a succession_n of_o abraham_n 190._o their_o worship_n be_v outward_a 290._o illiterate_a see_v mechanic_n indulgence_n 130._o infant_n see_v sin_n iniquity_n spiritual_a iniquity_n or_o wickedness_n 244._o inquisition_n 340._o inspiration_n where_o that_o do_v not_o teach_v word_n without_o do_v make_v a_o noise_n to_o no_o purpose_n 5_o 6._o john_n the_o apostle_n concern_v his_o second_o and_o three_o epistle_n and_o the_o revelation_n there_o be_v sometime_o divers_a opinion_n 40._o john_n the_o baptist_n do_v not_o miracle_n 198._o john_n hus_n be_v say_v to_o have_v prophesy_v 57_o john_n knox_n in_o what_o respect_n he_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n of_o scotland_n 217._o judas_n fall_v from_o his_o apostleship_n 191._o who_o be_v his_o vicar_n 293._o his_o ministry_n be_v not_o pure_o evangelical_n 205._o he_o be_v call_v immediate_o of_o christ_n and_o who_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o and_o plead_v for_o he_o as_o patron_n of_o their_o ministry_n 205_o 206._o justification_n the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v and_o have_v be_v great_o vitiate_v among_o the_o papist_n and_o wherein_o they_o place_v it_o 129_o 149_o 131_o 132._o luther_n and_o the_o protestant_n with_o good_a reason_n oppose_v this_o doctrine_n though_o many_o of_o they_o run_v soon_o into_o another_o extreme_a and_o wherein_o they_o place_v it_o and_o that_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o 131_o 132_o 136._o it_o come_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 133_o 149_o 150._o to_o justify_v signify_v to_o make_v real_o just_a not_o to_o repute_v just_a which_o many_o protestant_n be_v force_v also_o to_o acknowledge_v 135_o 136_o 141_o 142_o to_o 147._o the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n form_v in_o the_o heart_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n not_o work_n to_o speak_v proper_o which_o be_v only_o a_o effect_n and_o so_o also_o many_o protestant_n have_v say_v 128_o 130_o 131_o 132_o 134_o 135_o 141_o 146_o 147_o 148_o 149._o we_o be_v justify_v in_o work_n and_o how_o 128_o 135_o 136_o 149_o to_o 160._o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o popish_a doctrine_n that_o bellarmin_n and_o other_o oppose_v it_o 129_o 135_o 156_o 157._o k_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 256_o 327_o 334._o knowledge_n the_o height_n of_o man_n happiness_n be_v place_v in_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 1._o error_n in_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o knowledge_n be_v dangerous_a 1_o 2_o superstition_n idolatry_n and_o thence_o atheism_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o false_a and_o feign_a opinion_n concern_v god_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o 3._o the_o uncertain_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v divers_a way_n attain_v but_o the_o true_a and_o certain_a only_o by_o the_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 3_o 4_o 5._o it_o have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o use_n and_o by_o what_o device_n 8_o 9_o there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n nor_o of_o the_o son_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n 3_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v no_o more_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o prattle_a of_o a_o parrot_n which_o have_v be_v teach_v a_o few_o word_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o man_n 12_o 13._o l_o laic_n 214_o 218_o 219._o laity_n 219_o 321._o lake_n of_o bethsaida_n 94._o la_o the_o law_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o gospel_n 26_o 290._o the_o difference_n thereof_o 26_o 167_o 168._o see_v gospel_n under_o the_o law_n the_o people_n be_v not_o in_o any_o doubt_n who_o shall_v be_v priest_n and_o minister_n 188._o see_v minister_n of_o the_o law_n worship_n learn_v what_o true_a learning_n be_v 205_o 206._o letter_n the_o letter_n kill_v quicken_v not_o 168._o light_a the_o innate_a light_n be_v explain_v by_o cicero_n 125_o 126._o light_n of_o nature_n the_o error_n of_o the_o socinian_o and_o pelagian_n who_o exalt_v this_o light_n be_v reject_v 57_o 58_o save_v light_n see_v redemption_n be_v universal_a it_o be_v in_o all_o 83_o 84._o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a principle_n 86_o 87._o it_o be_v a_o substance_n not_o a_o accident_n 88_o 89._o it_o be_v supernatural_a and_o sufficient_a 104_o 107._o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v in_o every_o creature_n 107_o 108._o it_o be_v the_o word_n nigh_o in_o the_o mouth_n and_o in_o the_o heart_n 109_o 110._o it_o be_v the_o engraft_a word_n able_a to_o save_v the_o soul_n 114._o testimony_n of_o augustin_n and_o buchanan_n concern_v this_o light_n 127._o it_o be_v not_o any_o part_n of_o
nature_n or_o relic_n of_o the_o light_n remain_v in_o adam_n after_o the_o fall_n 91._o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o conscience_n 92_o 93._o it_o be_v not_o a_o common_a gift_n as_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o fire_n and_o outward_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o a_o certain_a preacher_n say_v 118._o it_o may_v be_v resist_v 84_o 86_o 94_o 95_o 174_o 175._o by_o this_o light_n or_o seed_n grace_n and_o word_n of_o god_n he_o invite_v all_o and_o call_v they_o to_o salvation_n 111_o 112_o 113._o none_o of_o those_o to_o who_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o this_o light_n 113_o 114_o 115_o 116_o 117._o it_o be_v small_a in_o the_o first_o manifestation_n but_o it_o grow_v 114._o it_o be_v slight_v by_o the_o calvinist_n papist_n socinian_o and_o arminian_n and_o why_o 114._o none_o can_v put_v it_o to_o silence_n 117._o there_o be_v and_o may_v be_v save_v by_o the_o operation_n thereof_o who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n 67_o 68_o 84_o 89_o 90_o 112_o 117_o to_o 125._o a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 119_o 120_o 132._o literature_n humane_a literature_n be_v not_o at_o all_o needful_a 206_o etc._n etc._n liturgy_n 236_o 251._o logic_n 209_o 210._o lord_n there_o be_v one_o lord_n 17_o 18._o love_n of_o a_o love-feast_n 324_o 325._o lutheran_n see_v protestant_n they_o affirm_v consubstantiation_n 30._o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 309_o 310._o they_o use_v unleavened_a bread_n in_o the_o supper_n 321._o m_o magistrate_n concern_v his_o power_n in_o thing_n pure_o religious_a and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o conscience_n 331_o to_o 349._o nor_o ought_v he_o to_o punish_v according_a to_o church_n censure_n 334._o concern_v the_o present_a magistrate_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 387_o 388._o mahomet_n prohibit_v all_o discourse_n and_o reason_n about_o religion_n 346._o he_o be_v a_o impostor_n 93._o majesty_n your_o majesty_n see_v title_n man_n see_v knowledge_n his_o spirit_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n 11._o the_o carnal_a man_n esteem_v the_o gospel_n truth_n as_o lie_n 12._o and_o in_o that_o state_n he_o can_v please_v god_n 20._o the_o new_a man_n and_o the_o old_a 37_o 38_o 88_o 89._o the_o natural_a man_n can_v discern_v spiritual_a thing_n as_o to_o the_o first_o adam_n he_o be_v fall_v and_o degenerate_a 37_o 48_o 57_o 67_o 68_o his_o thought_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a thing_n in_o the_o corrupt_a state_n be_v evil_a and_o unprofitable_a 57_o nothing_o of_o adam_n sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o until_o by_o evil-doing_a he_o commit_v his_o own_o 59_o 64_o 65_o in_o the_o corrupt_a state_n he_o have_v no_o will_n or_o light_v capable_a of_o itself_o to_o manifest_v spiritual_a thing_n 59_o 60_o 61_o 62_o 63_o 133._o he_o can_v when_o he_o will_v procure_v to_o himself_o tenderness_n of_o heart_n 94._o whatsoever_o he_o do_v while_o he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o in_o and_o through_o the_o power_n of_o god_n he_o be_v not_o approve_v of_o god_n 248_o 249._o how_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v nourish_v 305_o 306_o 307._o how_o his_o understanding_n can_v be_v force_v by_o suffering_n and_o how_o his_o understanding_n be_v change_v 338_o 339._o merchandise_n what_o it_o be_v to_o make_v merchandise_n with_o the_o scripture_n 211._o mass_o 232_o 236_o 251_o 272._o mathematician_n 35_o 36._o mechanic_n 218._o they_o contribute_v much_o to_o the_o reformation_n 219._o merit_v see_v justification_n metaphysic_n 209._o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n if_o any_o be_v call_v 43_o 199._o teacher_n be_v not_o to_o go_v before_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n 50._o the_o popish_a and_o protestant_n error_n concern_v the_o grace_n of_o a_o minister_n be_v reject_v 57_o 63._o they_o be_v give_v for_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o saint_n etc._n etc._n 165._o concern_v their_o call_n and_o wherein_o it_o be_v place_v 180_o 186_o to_o 199._o quality_n 180_o 198_o to_o 212._o order_n and_o distinction_n of_o laity_n and_o clergy_n 108_o to_o 219._o of_o separate_a man_n for_o the_o ministry_n 211._o concern_v the_o sustentation_n and_o maintenance_n of_o minister_n and_o their_o abuse_n of_o the_o idleness_n riot_n and_o cruelty_n of_o minister_n 181_o 220_o to_o 228._o what_o kind_n of_o ministry_n and_o minister_n the_o quaker_n be_v for_o and_o what_o sort_n their_o adversary_n be_v for_o 229_o 230_o 233_o 234._o minister_n of_o the_o law_n there_o be_v no_o doubtfulness_n concern_v they_o under_o the_o law_n 188_o 204_o 205._o their_o ministry_n be_v not_o pure_o spiritual_a and_o while_o they_o perform_v it_o they_o behove_v to_o be_v purify_v from_o their_o outward_a pollution_n as_o now_o those_o under_o the_o gospel_n from_o their_o inward_a 187_o 188_o 204._o miracle_n whether_o they_o be_v needful_a to_o those_o who_o place_n their_o faith_n in_o objective_a revelation_n 15_o 16_o 198._o moses_n 124_o 252_o 255_o 277_o 304._o munster_n see_v anabaptist_n their_o mischievous_a act_n 28._o music_n 276._o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n 214_o 257._o n_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n 293_o 295._o to_o anoint_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n 326._o nero_n 338._o noah_n faith_n have_v neither_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o prophecy_n of_o those_o go_n before_o he_o 120._o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o perfect_a man_n 169_o number_n of_o use_v the_o singular_a number_n to_o one_o person_n 359_o 360._o o_o oath_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o swear_v 352_o 374_o 380_o 389._o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n 44._o object_n of_o faith_n see_v faith_n ordinance_n seal_v ordinance_n 279._o oil_n to_o anoint_v with_o oil_n 303_o 326_o 329._o p_o papist_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n 30._o they_o be_v force_v ultimate_o to_o recur_v unto_o the_o immediate_a and_o inward_a revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 36._o what_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o curse_a deed_n of_o those_o of_o munster_n and_o they_o 31_o 32_o 34._o they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o second_o commandment_n in_o their_o catechism_n 47._o they_o make_v philosophy_n the_o handmaid_n of_o divinity_n 50_o they_o exalt_v too_o much_o the_o natural_a power_n and_o what_o they_o think_v of_o the_o save_v light_n 115._o their_o doctrine_n concern_v justification_n be_v great_o vitiate_v 129._o concern_v their_o manner_n and_o ceremony_n 184_o 185_o 193_o 194_o 196_o 197._o their_o literature_n and_o study_n 207._o of_o the_o modern_a apostle_n and_o evangelist_n 217._o who_o they_o exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n 219._o they_o must_v be_v sure_a of_o so_o much_o a_o year_n before_o they_o preach_v 221._o they_o do_v not_o labour_v 227._o the_o more_o moderate_a and_o sober_a of_o they_o exclaim_v against_o the_o excessive_a revenue_n of_o the_o clergy_n 224._o their_o worship_n can_v easy_o be_v stop_v 250_o 251._o albeit_o they_o say_v none_o be_v save_v without_o water_n baptism_n yet_o they_o allow_v a_o exception_n 30._o of_o baptism_n 299_o 300._o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 308_o 309_o 310._o of_o a_o oath_n 372._o parable_n of_o the_o talent_n 101_o 107._o of_o the_o vine-yard_n entrust_v 88_o of_o the_o sour_a 107_o 108._o of_o the_o tare_n 336._o paschal_n lamb_n the_o end_n thereof_o 312._o patriarch_n 306_o 312._o pelagian_n 58._o how_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o 24_o 95_o 96_o 301._o see_v light_n of_o nature_n pelagius_n deny_v that_o man_n get_v a_o evil_a seed_n from_o adam_n and_o ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o will_n and_o nature_n of_o man_n he_o say_v that_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o a_o state_n of_o not_o sin_v by_o his_o mere_a natural_a strength_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 173._o persecution_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n 342_o to_o 348._o see_v magistrate_n perseverance_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v lose_v through_o disobedience_n 160_o 173_o 174_o 175_o 176_o 177._o yet_o such_o a_o stability_n may_v in_o this_o life_n be_v attain_v from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o total_a apostasy_n 161_o 174_o 177_o 178_o 179._o peter_n whether_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n 30._o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o aristotle_n logic_n 50._o there_o be_v of_o old_a divers_a opinion_n concern_v his_o second_o epistle_n 40._o pharisee_n 278_o 316._o philosopher_n the_o heathen_a philosopher_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o a_o illiterate_a rustic_a 209._o philosophy_n 200_o 209._o physics_n 210._o play_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v they_o 350_o 352_o 367_o 368_o 369_o 370_o 371_o 389._o polycarpus_n the_o disciple_n of_o john_n 30._o pray_v to_o pray_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n 172_o
173._o concern_v the_o lord_n prayer_n 245._o to_o pray_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o offend_v god_n 249_o 369._o concern_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o will_n in_o silence_n 256._o see_v worship_n prayer_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n be_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n 207._o preacher_n see_v minister_n preach_v what_o it_o be_v term_v the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n 211_o 218_o 233_o 234._o to_o preach_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o offend_v god_n 249._o see_v worship_n it_o be_v a_o permanent_a institution_n 291._o it_o be_v learn_v as_o another_o trade_n 218._o predestinate_v god_n have_v after_o a_o special_a manner_n predestinate_v some_o to_o salvation_n of_o who_o if_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o some_o abuse_n be_v understand_v their_o objection_n be_v easy_o solve_v 97._o priest_n under_o the_o law_n god_n speak_v immediate_o to_o the_o highpriest_n 14_o 27._o priest_n see_v minister_n of_o the_o law_n 187._o 188_o 205_o 220_o 221._o profession_n a_o outward_a profession_n be_v necessary_a that_o any_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o particular_a christian_a church_n 183._o prophecy_n and_o to_o prophesy_v what_o it_o signify_v 215_o 216._o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v 217._o prophet_n some_o prophet_n do_v not_o miracle_n 198_o 199._o protestant_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n 30._o they_o be_v force_v ultimate_o to_o recur_v unto_o the_o immediate_a and_o inward_a revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 36._o what_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o execrable_a deed_n of_o those_o of_o munster_n and_o they_o 30_o 31_o 32_o 33._o they_o make_v philosophy_n the_o handmaid_n of_o divinity_n 50._o they_o affirm_v john_n hus_n prophesy_v of_o the_o reformation_n that_o be_v to_o be_v 57_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o throw_v themselves_o into_o many_o error_n while_o they_o be_v expect_v a_o great_a light_n 83._o they_o oppose_v the_o papist_n not_o without_o good_a cause_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n but_o they_o soon_o run_v into_o another_o extreme_a 130_o 131._o they_o say_v that_o the_o best_a work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v defile_v 136._o whether_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o papist_n in_o superstition_n and_o manner_n and_o what_o it_o be_v 184_o 185_o 197_o 198._o what_o they_o think_v of_o the_o call_v of_o a_o minister_n 188_o 189_o 190_o 191_o 192_o 196_o 197_o 198_o 199._o its_o lamentable_a that_o they_o betake_v they_o to_o judas_n for_o a_o patron_n to_o their_o minister_n and_o ministry_n 205._o their_o zeal_n and_o endeavour_n be_v praise_v 206._o of_o their_o school-divinity_n 210_o 211._o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n of_o this_o time_n 217._o who_o they_o exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n 219._o that_o they_o preach_v to_o none_o until_o they_o be_v first_o sure_a of_o so_o much_o a_o year_n 221._o the_o more_o moderate_a of_o they_o exclaim_v against_o the_o excessive_a revenue_n of_o the_o clergy_n 224._o though_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o part_v with_o old_a benefice_n 226._o they_o will_v not_o labour_v 227._o whether_o they_o have_v make_v a_o perfect_a reformation_n in_o worship_n 231_o 232._o their_o worship_n can_v easy_o be_v stop_v 251._o they_o have_v give_v great_a scandal_n to_o the_o reformation_n 272._o they_o deny_v water-baptism_n to_o be_v absolute_a necessary_a to_o salvation_n 285._o of_o water-baptism_n 299_o 300_o 301._o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 308_o 309_o 310._o they_o use_v not_o wash_v of_o foot_n 320._o how_o they_o do_v vindicate_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n 341._o some_o affirm_v that_o wicked_a king_n and_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o be_v depose_v yea_o kill_v 342._o how_o they_o meet_v when_o they_o have_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o magistrate_n 248_o 249._o of_o oath_n and_o swear_v 372_o 373._o psalm_n sing_v of_o psalm_n 275._o q_o quaker_n i._n e._n trembler_n and_o why_o so_o call_v 117_o 242._o they_o be_v not_o contemner_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o what_o they_o think_v of_o they_o 38_o 40_o 41_o 48_o 49_o 50_o 54_o 55_o 89._o nor_o of_o reason_n and_o what_o they_o think_v of_o it_o 91_o 92._o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o other_o secondary_a mean_n of_o knowledge_n be_v of_o no_o service_n 9_o they_o do_v not_o compare_v themselves_o to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o they_o be_v false_o accuse_v 88_o nor_o do_v they_o deny_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v christ_n his_o conception_n etc._n etc._n 89_o 141._o they_o be_v raise_v up_o of_o god_n to_o show_v forth_o the_o truth_n 83_o 84_o 115_o 116_o 126_o 212_o 243._o their_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n be_v not_o popish_a 129_o 134_o 151_o 158._o they_o be_v not_o against_o meditation_n 248._o their_o worship_n can_v be_v interrupt_v 250._o and_o what_o they_o have_v suffer_v 249_o 252._o how_o they_o vindicate_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n 346_o 347._o they_o do_v not_o persecute_v other_o 349._o their_o adversary_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v find_v for_o the_o most_o part_n free_a from_o the_o abomination_n which_o abound_v among_o other_o yet_o they_o count_v those_o thing_n vice_n in_o they_o which_o in_o themselves_o they_o extol_v as_o notable_a virtue_n and_o make_v more_o noise_n about_o the_o escape_n of_o one_o quakea_fw-mi than_o of_o a_o hundred_o among_o themselves_o 351_o 352._o they_o destroy_v not_o the_o mutual_a relation_n that_o be_v betwixt_o prince_n and_o people_n master_n and_o servant_n father_n and_o son_n nor_o do_v they_o introduce_v community_n of_o good_n 352_o 353._o nor_o say_v that_o one_o man_n may_v not_o use_v the_o creation_n more_o or_o less_o than_o another_o 353._o r_o ranter_n the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o ranter_n or_o libertine_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o good_a and_o evil_n 167._o reason_n what_o need_v we_o set_v up_o corrupt_a reason_n 23._o concern_v reason_n 30_o 92_o 93._o rebekkah_n 241._o reconciliation_n how_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n be_v make_v 136_o to_o 141._o recreation_n see_v play_n redemption_n be_v consider_v in_o a_o twofold_a respect_n first_o perform_v by_o christ_n without_o we_o and_o second_o wrought_v in_o we_o 134_o 135._o it_o be_v universal_a god_n give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n jesus_n christ_n for_o a_o light_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v be_v save_v 67_o 68_o 103_o 104._o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n be_v not_o less_o universal_a than_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n 67._o there_o be_v scarce_o find_v any_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o be_v so_o express_o confirm_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 71_o 72_o 73_o 74_o 75_o 76._o this_o doctrine_n be_v praach_v by_o the_o father_n so_o call_v of_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n and_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o say_n of_o some_o 78_o 79._o those_o that_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v affirm_v it_o have_v not_o give_v a_o clear_a testimony_n how_o that_o benefit_n be_v communicate_v to_o all_o nor_o have_v sufficient_o teach_v the_o truth_n because_o they_o have_v add_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n yea_o they_o have_v thereby_o give_v the_o contrary_a party_n a_o strong_a argument_n to_o defend_v their_o precise_a decree_n of_o reprobation_n among_o who_o be_v the_o remonstrant_n of_o holland_n 68_o 80_o 81_o 82._o god_n have_v now_o raise_v up_o a_o few_o illiterate_a man_n to_o be_v dispenser_n of_o this_o truth_n 89_o 90_o 116_o 117._o this_o doctrine_n show_v forth_o the_o mercy_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n 83_o 84_o 96_o 97._o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o salvation_n 84._o it_o answer_v to_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n promise_n and_o threat_n 84._o it_o magnify_v and_o commend_v the_o merit_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n 84._o it_o exalt_v above_o all_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 84._o it_o overturn_v the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o pelagian_n semipelagian_n and_o other_o who_o exalt_v the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n 84._o it_o make_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n sole_o to_o depend_v upon_o god_n and_o his_o condemnation_n whole_o and_o in_o every_o respect_n to_o be_v of_o himself_o 84._o it_o take_v away_o all_o ground_n of_o despair_n and_o feed_v none_o in_o security_n 85._o it_o commend_v the_o christian_a religion_n among_o infidel_n 85._o it_o show_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n 85._o and_o it_o be_v establish_v though_o not_o in_o word_n yet_o by_o deed_n even_o by_o those_o minister_n that_o oppose_v this_o doctrine_n 85._o it_o derogate_v not_o from_o the_o atonement_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o do_v magnify_v and_o exalt_v it_o 89._o there_o be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o none_o except_v a_o certain_a day_n and_o time_n of_o
visitation_n in_o which_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v save_v 83_o 84_o 98_o 99_o 100_o 101_o 102._o the_o testimony_n of_o cyrill_n concern_v this_o thing_n 102._o it_o be_v explain_v what_o be_v understand_v and_o not_o understand_v by_o this_o day_n 86._o to_o some_o it_o may_v be_v long_o to_z other_o short_a 86._o many_o may_v outlive_v this_o their_o day_n of_o visitation_n after_o which_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o they_o 86._o some_o example_n be_v allege_v 87._o the_o objection_n and_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o other_o abuse_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n incite_v man_n necessary_o to_o sin_n be_v easy_o solve_v if_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o these_o man_n after_o the_o time_n of_o their_o visitation_n be_v past_a 87_o 97_o 98._o there_o be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o light_n seed_n grace_n and_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o they_o can_v be_v save_v 83_o 84_o 97_o 102_o to_o 112._o which_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o cyrill_n and_o other_o 106_o 107_o 108_o 110_o 111._o what_o that_o light_n be_v see_v light_n many_o though_o ignorant_a of_o the_o outward_a history_n yet_o have_v be_v sensible_a of_o the_o loss_n that_o come_v by_o adam_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o plato_n and_o other_o 124_o 125._o many_o have_v know_v christ_n within_o as_o a_o remedy_n to_o redeem_v they_o though_o not_o under_o that_o denomination_n witness_n seneca_n cicero_n and_o other_o 124_o 125._o yet_o all_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o outward_a history_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o god_n bring_v the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o 89._o reformation_n wherein_o it_o be_v not_o place_v 188._o mechanic_n man_n have_v contribute_v much_o to_o it_o 218._o what_o have_v be_v pernicious_a to_o it_o 310._o relation_n see_v quaker_n religion_n the_o christian_a religion_n see_v christianity_n how_o it_o be_v make_v odious_a to_o jew_n turk_n and_o heathen_n 309._o remonstrant_n of_o holland_n see_v arminian_n redemption_n they_o deny_v absolute_a reprobation_n 30._o how_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o 95._o they_o exalt_v too_o much_o the_o natural_a power_n and_o free_a will_n of_o man_n and_o what_o they_o think_v of_o the_o save_v light_n 114_o 115._o their_o worship_n can_v easy_o be_v stop_v 251._o reprobation_n see_v also_o redemption_n what_o absolute_a reprobation_n be_v be_v describe_v 68_o 69._o its_o doctrine_n be_v horrible_a impious_a and_o blasphemous_a 69_o 73_o 74._o it_o be_v also_o so_o call_v by_o lucas_n osiander_n 81._o it_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n and_o augustin_n lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n thereof_o which_o dominicus_n calvin_n and_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n maintain_v 69_o 80_o 81._o also_o luther_n who_o notwithstanding_o lutheran_n afterward_o desert_v 80_o 81._o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o god_n and_o make_v he_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n prove_v by_o the_o say_n of_o calvin_n beza_n zanchius_n paraeus_n martin_n zwinglius_fw-la and_o piscator_fw-la 70_o 71._o it_o make_v the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n a_o mere_a mock_n and_o illusion_n 71_o it_o make_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n to_o have_v be_v a_o testimony_n of_o god_n wrath_n 72_o 73._o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o mankind_n and_o make_v his_o condition_n worse_o than_o the_o condition_n of_o devil_n beast_n jew_n under_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o same_o which_o the_o poet_n apply_v to_o tantalus_n 72_o 73._o revelation_n god_n always_o manifest_v himself_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n 3_o 11_o 12_o 34._o they_o be_v make_v several_a way_n 3._o they_o have_v be_v always_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o remain_v 3_o 13_o to_o 24._o and_o that_o not_o only_o subjective_o but_o also_o objective_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26._o they_o be_v simple_o necessary_a unto_o true_a faith_n 3_o 28_o 36._o they_o be_v not_o uncertain_a 27_o 28_o 29._o yea_o it_o be_v horrible_a sacrilege_n to_o accuse_v they_o of_o uncertainty_n 22._o the_o example_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n of_o munster_n do_v not_o a_o whit_n weaken_v this_o doctrine_n 29_o 31_o 33_o 34_o 41._o they_o can_v never_o contradict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o sound_a reason_n 3_o 34_o 50_o 51._o they_o be_v evident_a and_o clear_a of_o themselves_o nor_o need_v they_o another_o testimony_n 3_o 35_o 36._o they_o be_v the_o only_a sure_a certain_a and_o unmoveable_a foundation_n of_o all_o christian_a faith_n 36_o 37._o carnal_a christian_n judge_v they_o nothing_o necessary_a yea_o they_o be_v hiss_v out_o by_o the_o most_o part_n of_o man_n 3._o of_o old_a none_o be_v esteem_v christian_n save_o those_o that_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n but_o now_o adays_o he_o be_v term_v a_o heretic_n who_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o 3_o 4._o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o these_o revelation_n 5_o 6_o 7_o 21_o 22._o by_o who_o and_o what_o device_n they_o have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o use_n 83._o revenge_n see_v war_n 379_o 380._o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n see_v scripture_n rustic_a the_o poor_a rustick_n answer_v give_v to_o the_o proud_a prelate_n 195._o he_o bring_v a_o philosopher_n unto_o the_o christian_a faith_n 209._o s_o sabbath_n 234_o 235._o sacrament_n of_o their_o number_n nature_n etc._n etc._n how_o much_o contention_n there_o have_v be_v and_o that_o the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n but_o borrow_v from_o the_o heathen_n 278_o 301._o its_o definition_n will_v agree_v to_o many_o other_o thing_n 279._o whether_o they_o confer_v grace_n 328_o 329._o salvation_n without_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 181._o samaria_n the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n 313._o sanctification_n see_v justification_n saxony_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n of_o the_o scandal_n he_o give_v to_o the_o reformation_n by_o be_v present_a at_o the_o mass_n 272._o sceptic_a 208_o school_n without_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n nothing_o be_v learned_a but_o mere_a talk_n and_o a_o shadow_n of_o knowledge_n 4_o 5_o 6._o whether_o public_a school_n be_v necessary_a 207._o scripture_n of_o truth_n whence_o they_o proceed_v and_o what_o they_o contain_v 38._o they_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o fountain_n and_o not_o the_o fountain_n itself_o 38._o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v the_o adequate_a primary_n rule_v of_o faith_n and_o manner_n but_o a_o secondary_a and_o subordinate_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o why_o 38_o to_o 57_o 199._o their_o certainty_n be_v only_o know_v by_o the_o spirit_n 38.39_o 143._o they_o testify_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n for_o a_o guide_n 38_o 48_o 49_o 52_o 53_o 54_o 55._o their_o authority_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o church_n or_o council_n nor_o upon_o their_o intrinsic_a virtue_n but_o upon_o the_o spirit_n nor_o be_v it_o subject_v to_o the_o corrupt_a reason_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o spirit_n 38_o 50._o the_o testimony_n of_o calvin_n the_o french_a church_n the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o the_o divine_n of_o great_a britain_n at_o westminster_n concern_v this_o thing_n 39_o 40._o the_o contention_n of_o those_o that_o seek_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o something_o else_o than_o the_o spirit_n 39_o 40._o divers_a opinion_n of_o the_o father_n so_o call_v concern_v some_o book_n 39_o 40._o concern_v the_o take_n away_o and_o the_o corruption_n of_o some_o place_n the_o translation_n transcription_n and_o various_a lection_n of_o the_o hebrew_n character_n and_o of_o the_o greek_a book_n the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n concern_v the_o hebrew_n book_n and_o of_o admit_v or_o reject_v some_o book_n 47_o 48_o 49._o of_o the_o difficulty_n in_o their_o explanation_n 50_o 51._o augustin_n judgement_n concern_v the_o author_n of_o the_o canonic_a book_n and_o concern_v the_o transcription_n and_o interpretation_n 49._o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a 41_o 49._o the_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a abuse_v they_o 50._o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o fill_v up_o canon_n 55._o many_o canonic_a book_n through_o the_o injury_n of_o time_n lose_v 55._o whether_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o any_o book_n be_v canonical_a 55_o 56._o they_o be_v sometime_o as_o a_o seal_a book_n 207._o to_o understand_v they_o there_o be_v need_n of_o the_o help_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 5_o 6_o no_o man_n can_v make_v himself_o a_o doctor_n of_o they_o but_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 6._o s_n the_o ignatian_a sect_n love_v literature_n 207._o they_o call_v those_o that_o be_v send_v unto_o india_n apostles_n 217._o seed_n of_o righteousness_n 247._o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n see_v sin_n redemption_n self-denial_n 247._o semipelagian_n their_o axiom_n facien●●_n quoth_v in_o
joh._n 5.44_o jer._n 10.3_o act_n 10.26_o matt._n 15.13_o col._n 2.8_o john_n 17.3_o john_n 7.48_o 49._o aug._n ex_fw-la tract_n epist._n joh._n 3._o lib._n 1._o storm_n paedag._n lib._n the_o veland_n virginibus_fw-la cap._n 1._o hpist_n paulin._n 103._o de_fw-fr incarnatione_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la hom._n 30._o upon_o the_o gospel_n in_o thesau_n 10._o lib._n 13._o cap._n 3._o in_o psal._n 84._o john_n 1.1_o 2_o 3._o eph._n 3.9_o joh._n 16.13_o &_o 14_o 26._o euseb._n hist._n ecclesi_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 26._o conc._n flor._n sess._n 5._o decreto_fw-la quodam_fw-la concl._n eph._n act._n 6._o sess._n 11._o &_o 12._o council_n flor._n sess._n 18.20_o conc._n flor._n sess._n 21._o p._n 480._o &_o seqq_fw-la john_n 16._o verse_n 13._o rom._n 8._o verse_n 14_o council_n laod._n can_v 59_o in_o cod_n ecc._n 163._o council_n laod._n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 364._o exclude_v from_o the_o canon_n eccl._n the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n judith_n tobias_n the_o maccabee_n which_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 399_o receive_v hieron_n epist_n 28_o ad_fw-la lucin_n pag._n 247._o epiphan_n in_o anchor_n tom._n 2._o op_n gal._n 1.8.9_o rom._n 3.10_o ps._n 14.3_o &_o 53.2_o mat._n 7.16_o ezek._n 18.32_o &_o 33.11_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o 12.7_o calv._n in_o cap._n 3._o gen._n id._n 1._o inst._n c._n 18._o s._n 1._o id._n lib._n de_fw-fr praed_n idem_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr provide_v id_fw-la inst._n cap._n 23._o s._n 1_o 1_o beza_n lib._n de_fw-la praed_fw-we praed_fw-we id_fw-la de_fw-la praed_fw-we adart_v 1._o 1._o zanch_n de_fw-fr excaecat_fw-la q._n 5._o idem_fw-la lib._n 5_o the_o nat_n dei_fw-la cap._n 2._o the_o praed_fw-we praed_fw-we paraeus_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr amiss_o gratiae_fw-la c._n 2._o ibid._n c._n 1._o 1._o martyr_n in_o rom._n rom._n zuing._n lib._n the_o prov_n c._n 5._o 5._o resp._n add_v vor_v part_n 1._o p._n 120._o upon_o job_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 11._o so_o say_v the_o westminster_n confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 11._o sect._n 1_o 1_o eph._n 2._o verse_n 15._o 1_o joh._n 4._o verse_n 10._o ezech._n 16._o verse_n 6._o 1_o pet._n 2._o v._n 22.24_o &_o 3.18_o tit._n 2.14_o phil._n 3._o verse_n 10._o 10._o i_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v concern_v man_n before_o conversion_n who_o afterward_o be_v convert_v who_o yet_o some_o of_o our_o antagonist_n call_v antinomian_o do_v aver_v be_v justify_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o also_o touch_v those_o who_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n have_v be_v convert_v who_o albeit_o they_o confess_v they_o persist_v always_o in_o some_o misdeed_n and_o sometime_o in_o heinous_a sin_n as_o be_v manifest_a in_o david_n adultery_n and_o murder_n yet_o they_o assert_v to_o be_v perfect_o and_o whole_o justify_v heb._n 11.6_o joh._n 3.18_o luk._n 13.3_o apoc._n 2.5_o rom._n 8.13_o heb._n 7.26_o 1_o pet._n 2.22_o de_fw-fr just._n con_v bell._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o pag._n 469._o disp._n de_fw-fr iust._n thes._n 3._o ver_fw-la 4_o loc_n de_fw-fr iust._n ad_fw-la eph._n in_o cap._n 2._o tom._n 3._o de_fw-fr sanct._n lib._n 10._o cap._n 1._o in_o cap._n 3._o ad_fw-la tit._n ver_fw-la 7._o in_o apol._n confess_v aug._n in_o gen._n cap._n 15._o ad_fw-la verb._n credidit_fw-la abraham_n deo_fw-la pag._n 161._o lib._n 3._o reg._n cap._n 9_o ver_fw-la 4._o pag._n 681._o in_o rom._n 4._o ad_fw-la ver_fw-la 16._o in_o considerate_a modest_a de_fw-fr just._n lib._n 2._o sect._n 8._o inst._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 11._o sect._n 15._o in_o exam._n council_n try_v the_o inst._n pag._n 129._o in_o cap._n 2._o ad_fw-la eph._n ver_fw-la 4._o loc_n de_fw-fr lust_n thes._n 15._o in_o gen._n pag._n 162._o arg_n epistolae_fw-la praefixiae_fw-la dissert_v ann_n impress_n paris_n ann_n 1597_o pag._n 78._o impress_n genevae_n 1586._o in_o medulla_n s._n theologiae_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o thesi_fw-la 30._o job_n 8.13_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o westminst_a large_a catechism_n object_n phil._n 3._o ver_fw-la 14._o matth._n 10._o ver_fw-la 8._o 8._o as_o be_v betwixt_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n hos._n 4.9_o joh._n 10.1_o 10.1_o succession_n succession_n who_o give_v himself_o out_o doctor_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o sacred_a theology_n at_o franequer_n matth._n 12._o v._n 48._o etc._n etc._n mark_n 3._o ver_fw-la 33._o &c_n &c_n 2._o cor._n 6._o v._n 17_o 18._o 18._o in_o the_o life_n of_o benedict_n 4._o of_o joh._n 16_o of_o sylvester_n 3._o of_o boniface_n 8._o of_o steph._n 6_o of_o jean_n 8._o also_o onuphrius_n annotation_n upon_o this_o papass_n towards_o the_o end_n end_n franciscus_n lambertus_n avenionensis_n in_o his_o book_n concern_v prophecy_n learning_n tongue_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n argentorat_n excus_n anno_o 1516._o de_fw-mi prov_fw-mi cap._n 24._o heb._n 5.4_o 5.4_o so_o nic._n arnoldus_fw-la sect._n 32._o upon_o the_o 4_o these_o these_o ibid._n nic._n arnoldus_fw-la inst._n inst._n lucae_n osiandri_fw-la epit_fw-la hist._n eccles._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o cent_n 4._o see_v also_o 2_o pet._n 2._o ver_fw-la 3._o vers_fw-la 4._o vers_fw-la 11._o act_n 21.9_o isa._n 56.11_o matth._n 10.4_o isa._n 30._o verse_n 20._o prov._n 27._o verse_n 19_o isa._n 10.20_o &_o 26.3_o eph._n 4.23_o 1_o sam._n 10.12_o 1_o cor._n 6.17_o 6.17_o if_o any_o object_n here_o that_o the_o lord_n prayer_n be_v a_o prescribe_a form_n of_o prayer_n obj._n and_o therefore_o of_o worship_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o child_n i_o answer_v first_o this_o can_v be_v object_v by_o any_o sort_n of_o christian_n that_o i_o know_v answ._n because_o there_o be_v none_o who_o use_v not_o other_o prayer_n or_o that_o limit_n their_o worship_n to_o this_o second_o this_o be_v command_v to_o the_o disciple_n while_o yet_o weak_a before_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o that_o they_o shall_v only_o use_v it_o in_o pray_v but_o that_o he_o may_v show_v they_o by_o one_o example_n how_o that_o their_o prayer_n ought_v to_o be_v short_a and_o not_o like_o the_o long_a prayer_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o it_o appear_v by_o all_o the_o prayer_n which_o divers_a saint_n afterward_o make_v use_n of_o whereof_o the_o scripture_n make_v mention_v for_o none_o make_v use_v of_o this_o neither_o repeat_v it_o but_o use_v other_o word_n according_a as_o the_o thing_n require_v and_o as_o the_o spirit_n give_v utterance_n three_o that_o this_o aught_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v appear_v from_o rom._n 8.26_o of_o which_o afterward_o mention_n shall_v be_v make_v at_o great_a length_n where_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v but_o the_o spirit_n itself_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o etc._n etc._n but_o if_o this_o prayer_n have_v be_v such_o a_o prescribe_a form_n of_o prayer_n to_o the_o church_n that_o have_v not_o be_v true_a neither_o have_v they_o be_v ignorant_a what_o to_o pray_v nor_o shall_v they_o have_v need_v the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o teach_v they_o prov._n 18.10_o john_n 18.36_o col._n 2.15_o act_n 7.48_o isa._n 1.16_o 17._o prov._n ●7·1●_n inst._n job_n 2.13_o prov._n 21.4_o eph._n 4.5_o 1_o pet._n 3.21_o rom._n 6.4_o gal._n 3.27_o col._n 2.12_o joh._n 3.30_o 1_o cor._n 1.17_o 1_o cor._n 1.14_o obi._n confir_n matth._n 9.13_o refut_n john_n 3._o verse_n 34._o allegation_n obi._n obi._n in_o the_o 4_o book_n of_o his_o instit._n chap._n 15._o quest·_n 1_o cor_fw-la 6.17_o john_n ●_o 60_o 66._o john_n 6.35_o 55._o 2_o cor._n 6.14_o john_n 6.53_o john_n 6.57_o john_n 6.56_o verse_n 16._o inst._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 17._o matth._n 26.16_o mark_v 14.22_o luke_n 22.19_o matth._n 26.26_o mar._n 14.22_o lu._n 22.19_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o obi._n anw_n and_o likewise_o the_o other_o oriental_a version_n as_o the_o arabic_a and_o aethiopick_n have_v it_o the_o same_o way_n obi._n phh._n 5.13_o luke_n 9_o v_o 55_o 56._o matth._n 7._o v._n 12_o 13.29_o tit._n 3.10_o rom._n 14.23_o matth._n 10.16_o matth._n 28.18_o 2_o cor._n 10_o 4._o psal._n 110.3_o athan._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la solit_fw-la vit_fw-mi ag_n ibid._n athan._n apol._n 1._o de_fw-la fuga_fw-la sua_fw-la tom_fw-mi 1._o hill_n contra_fw-la aux_fw-fr hieron_n epist_n 62_o ad_fw-la the._n ambr._n epist_n 32._o tom_n 3._o ambr._n epist_n 27._o marc._n epist_n ad_fw-la archimand_n etc._n etc._n mon._n eg._n in_o acta_fw-la council_n chalce_fw-la chalce_fw-la hosius_n epist_n ad_fw-la constir_n apud_fw-la ath._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la solit_fw-la vit_fw-mi tom_fw-mi 1._o 1._o hil._n l._n 1._o ad_fw-la const._n const._n ambr._n comm_n in_o luc._n l._n 7._o 7._o cypr._n epist_n 62._o 62._o tertu_fw-fr apolog._n cap._n 24._o id._n apolog._n c._n 28._o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la scapul_n e._n 2._o luth._o lib._n de_fw-la captivitt_n babylonica_fw-la history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n calv._n inst._n c._n 19_o sect._n 14._o eph._n 5.11_o 1_o pet._n 1.14_o joh._n 5.44_o jer._n 10.3_o act_n 10.26_o matth._n 15.13_o col._n 2.8_o 2.8_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o papist_n use_v to_o disapprove_v the_o sobriety_n of_o the_o waldenses_n of_o who_o reinerius_n a_o popish_a author_n so_o write_v but_o this_o sect_n of_o the_o leonist_n have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o truth_n for_o that_o they_o live_v righteous_o before_o man_n and_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o they_o blaspheme_v and_o hate_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n obi._n eccles._n hist._n lib._n 4._o pag._n 445._o phil._n 3.20_o 1_o sam._n 2.30_o heiron_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o celant_fw-la admonish_v she_o that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v to_o none_o for_o her_o nobility_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n admit_v not_o of_o respect_n of_o person_n neither_o be_v man_n to_o be_v esteem_v because_o of_o their_o outward_a condition_n but_o according_a to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o be_v esteem_v either_o noble_a or_o base_a he_o that_o obey_v not_o sin_n be_v free_a who_o be_v strong_a in_o virtue_n be_v noble_a let_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n be_v read_v read_v this_o history_n be_v report_v by_o casaubonus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o manner_n and_o custom_n pag._n 169._o in_o this_o last_o age_n he_o be_v esteem_v a_o uncivil_a man_n who_o will_v not_o either_o to_o his_o inferior_a or_o equal_a subscribe_v himself_o servant_n but_o sulpitious_a severus_n be_v heretofore_o sharp_o reprove_v by_o paulinus_n bishop_n of_o nola_n because_o in_o his_o epistle_n he_o have_v subscribe_v himself_o his_o servant_n say_v beware_v thou_o subscribe_v not_o thyself_o his_o servant_n who_o be_v thy_o brother_n for_o flattery_n be_v sinful_a not_o a_o testimony_n of_o humility_n to_o give_v their_o honour_n to_o man_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o the_o one_o lord_n master_n and_o god._n rom._n 12.2_o athan._n in_o pass_n &_o cruc_fw-la domin_n hier._n lib._n ep._n part_n 3._o tract_n 1._o ep._n 2._o ans._n matth._n 5.43_o eph._n 6.12_o 2_o cor._n 10.4_o ja._n 4.1_o gal._n 5.24_o isa_n 2.4_o mich._n 4.3_o isa._n 65.25_o joh._n 18._o v._n 36._o matth._n 26._o v._n 52._o rom._n 12._o v._n 19_o marc._n 8._o v._n 34._o luc._n 7._o v._n 28._o luc._n 3._o v._n 14._o esth._n 3.5_o job_n 32.21_o 22._o